a_o candlestick_n do_v a_o candle_n revel_v 2._o 1._o 4._o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n since_o many_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v doubtful_a and_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v without_o a_o interpreter_n act_v 8._o 31._o it_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o expound_v the_o same_o to_o interpret_v and_o give_v the_o sense_n nehem._n 8._o 8_o 9_o luke_n 24._o 27._o provide_v that_o this_o exposition_n be_v by_o the_o scripture_n some_o of_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v condere_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o facere_fw-la canonicum_fw-la quo_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la and_o though_o they_o talk_v of_o counsel_n and_o father_n yet_o all_o be_v as_o the_o we_o pope_n conclude_v the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v necessary_a to_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n be_v divine_a scripture_n by_o a_o historical_a and_o acquire_v faith_n to_o know_v this_o by_o a_o divine_a sub-witnesseth_a and_o infuse_a faith_n beside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o matter_n character_n and_o content_n of_o every_o book_n and_o compare_v of_o it_o with_o other_o scripture_n do_v serve_v as_o a_o inward_a cause_n to_o produce_v the_o say_v infuse_a faith_n object_n we_o be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 16._o sol._n controversy_n be_v either_o dogmatic_a concern_v faith_n or_o ritual_a concern_v true_a order_n the_o proposition_n be_v about_o these_o not_o the_o first_o second_o from_o this_o fundamental_a truth_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v immediate_o from_o god_n the_o basis_n indeed_o of_o all_o religion_n 1_o cor._n 15._o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v far_a to_o be_v condemn_v which_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n but_o in_o a_o unknown_a 249._o tongue_n nor_o in_o private_a by_o the_o common_a people_n without_o special_a leave_n and_o certain_a caution_n from_o their_o superior_n of_o old_a they_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v read_v at_o all_o of_o late_a they_o be_v force_v to_o give_v licence_n to_o some_o and_o they_o teach_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o make_v the_o scripture_n judge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v the_o interpreter_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v they_o must_v take_v the_o scripture_n to_o mean_v none_o otherwise_o whatsoever_o it_o seem_v to_o say_v than_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v teach_v and_o practice_v there_o can_v be_v a_o sure_a sign_n of_o a_o bad_a cause_n then_o that_o it_o fear_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o write_n which_o itself_o can_v deny_v to_o be_v write_v by_o god_n for_o correction_n for_o reproof_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n some_o papist_n be_v more_o modest_a herein_o as_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 15._o catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la statuit_fw-la ne_fw-la passim_fw-la omnibus_fw-la concedatur_fw-la scripturae_fw-la lectio_fw-la some_o more_o rigid_a as_o huntly_n and_o hosius_n the_o papist_n 14_o object_n the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o hinder_v layman_n from_o read_v they_o and_o account_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o profanation_n to_o allow_v man_n woman_n and_o child_n and_o all_o promiscuous_o the_o use_n of_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n and_o think_v they_o will_v rather_o be_v hurt_v then_o benefit_v by_o they_o take_v occasion_n of_o err_v from_o they_o hosius_n urge_v that_o give_v not_o holy_a thing_n to_o dog_n cast_v not_o pearl_n before_o swine_n to_o prove_v the_o people_n must_v be_v bar_v from_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v pope_n innocent_n gloss_n a_o beast_n may_v not_o touch_v the_o mount_n a_o layman_n may_v not_o meddle_v with_o scripture_n lindan_n say_v nihil_fw-la noxae_fw-la inferretur_fw-la in_o ecclesiam_fw-la salvo_fw-la traditionis_fw-la fundamento_fw-la 15._o if_o there_o be_v no_o bible_n and_o another_o scriptura_fw-la citius_fw-la faciet_fw-la haereticum_fw-la lutheranum_n quam_fw-la catholicum_fw-la because_o we_o will_v have_v all_o prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o make_v that_o the_o complete_a rule_n for_o what_o we_o believe_v or_o do_v in_o all_o theological_a matter_n they_o call_v we_o scripturarios_fw-la scripture-man_n and_o atramentrarios_fw-la theologos_fw-la and_o so_o to_o carry_v or_o read_v a_o bible_n be_v matter_n of_o whitakerus_n scoff_n we_o may_v style_v they_o in_o tertullia_n phrase_n scripturarum_fw-la lucifugae_fw-la and_o traditionary_n st_n gregory_n who_o be_v bless_v in_o their_o church_n exhort_v a_o layman_n to_o the_o serious_a study_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v learn_v the_o will_n of_o god_n allege_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o epistle_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o creature_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la autem_fw-la scriptura_fw-la purpose_n sacra_fw-la nisi_fw-la epistola_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la dei_fw-la ad_fw-la creaturam_fw-la greg._n lib._n 4_o epist_n 40._o ad_fw-la theodorum_fw-la mediâum_fw-la prove_v further_o that_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o frothy_a a_o argument_n for_o persuade_v any_o devout_a christian_n not_o to_o read_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v rather_o incite_v they_o to_o great_a diligence_n therein_o and_o therefore_o he_o elegant_o compâres_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o river_n wherein_o say_v he_o there_o be_v as_o well_o shallow_a ford_n for_o lamb_n to_o wade_v in_o as_o depth_n and_o gulf_n wherein_o the_o elephant_n may_v swim_v chrysostom_n hold_v it_o a_o thing_n necessary_a for_o all_o man_n daily_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n audito_fw-la quaeso_fw-la saeculares_fw-la comparate_v vobis_fw-la biblia_fw-la animae_fw-la pharmaca_fw-la st_n jerom_n do_v exhort_v divers_a woman_n thereto_o and_o commend_v they_o for_o exercise_v 70._o themselves_o therein_o he_o write_v to_o laeta_n and_o gaudentia_fw-la and_o show_v they_o how_o they_o shall_v bring_v up_o their_o daughter_n scripturas_fw-la sacras_fw-la tenebat_fw-la memoriter_fw-la hieron_n de_fw-fr paula_n in_o epitaphio_fw-la he_o commend_v the_o husbandman_n about_o bethlem_n for_o be_v so_o perfect_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v the_o psalm_n of_o david_n by_o heart_n and_o sing_v they_o as_o they_o follow_v the_o blow_n arator_fw-la stivam_fw-la tenens_fw-la cantat_fw-la davidicum_fw-la melos_fw-la epist._n ad_fw-la demetriad_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v commend_v this_o in_o timothy_n 2_o tim._n 3._o 15._o that_o from_o his_o childhood_n he_o know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o note_v it_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o grandmother_n and_o mother_n that_o they_o have_v train_v he_o up_o so_o if_o he_o have_v not_o know_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o even_o a_o child_n may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v they_o what_o may_v we_o judge_v of_o the_o other_o easy_a book_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v have_v the_o revelation_n the_o obscure_a book_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v read_v revel_v 1_o 3_o the_o people_n take_v occasion_n of_o err_a and_o blaspheme_v from_o the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n many_o abuse_n preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o by_o this_o reason_n the_o latin_a bibles_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v read_v public_o because_o many_o understand_a latin_a from_o the_o read_n of_o they_o may_v take_v occasion_n of_o err_a there_o be_v a_o great_a reason_n to_o be_v have_v of_o god_n elect_v which_o be_v edify_v by_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n then_o of_o those_o who_o wrest_v they_o peter_n by_o this_o reason_n stir_v up_o the_o faithful_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n with_o great_a devotion_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o 3._o this_o be_v common_a both_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o laity_n to_o take_v occasion_n of_o err_a and_o blaspheme_v from_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o peruse_v the_o history_n of_o time_n past_a we_o shall_v find_v that_o learned_a and_o ecclesiastical_a man_n do_v often_o fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n from_o misunderstanding_n and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n than_o any_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n who_o be_v often_o also_o by_o the_o learned_a draw_v into_o heresy_n the_o papist_n be_v not_o afraid_a the_o people_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v by_o read_v their_o legend_n and_o lie_v fable_n by_o their_o image_n which_o do_v natural_o teach_v idolatry_n the_o papist_n further_o object_n that_o the_o hebrew_n do_v not_o permit_v young_a man_n to_o read_v 39_o part_n of_o genesis_n canticle_n ezekiel_n we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o read_n of_o those_o scripture_n non_fw-la ablatam_fw-la hominibus_fw-la sed_fw-la dilatam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la be_v not_o take_v away_o from_o they_o but_o delay_v only_o they_o permit_v all_o man_n before_o thirty_o to_o read_v all_o other_o chapter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o after_o thirty_o these_o
when_o you_o become_v man_n you_o must_v put_v away_o these_o childish_a thing_n blow_v at_o the_o root_n p._n 82_o 83._o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n forbid_v even_o angel_n to_o add_v deest_fw-la any_o thing_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v by_o the_o lord_n do_v prove_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n deut._n 4._o 5_o 12._o and_o 12._o 32._o and_o 30._o 10._o and_o 5._o 12_o 13_o 14._o and_o 28._o 58._o joshua_n 1._o 7_o 8._o prov._n 30._o 5._o wherefore_o the_o apostle_n command_v that_o no_o man_n presume_v above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 6._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 15_o 16._o divers_a reason_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o this_o last_o place_n to_o prove_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n 1._o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o there_o need_v no_o further_a counsel_n nor_o direction_n thereunto_o chamierus_n but_o 17._o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n perfect_a and_o complete_a unto_o every_o work_n of_o his_o ministry_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o teach_v true_a doctrine_n or_o confute_v false_a by_o exhort_v and_o put_v forward_o to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a or_o dehort_v from_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a paul_n will_v not_o have_v we_o think_v that_o all_o and_o every_o writing_n viz._n of_o plato_n aristotle_n be_v divine_o inspire_v for_o in_o ver_fw-la 15._o he_o not_o only_o use_v the_o plural_a number_n call_v they_o the_o holy_a write_n thereby_o to_o note_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o one_o sentence_n or_o book_n but_o all_o the_o sentence_n and_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o use_v the_o article_n which_o have_v force_n of_o a_o universal_a note_n therefore_o the_o greek_a word_n the_o whole_a scripture_n signify_v the_o whole_a altogether_o and_o not_o every_o part_n several_o in_o this_o place_n 2._o no_o one_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o minister_n perfect_a therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o this_o sufficiency_n be_v to_o be_v find_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o other_o divine_n have_v from_o this_o place_n prove_v the_o perfection_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o reason_n thus_o as_o the_o papist_n charge_v we_o it_o be_v profitable_a therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a but_o because_o 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a for_o all_o these_o whitak_n end_n viz._n to_o teach_v sound_a doctrine_n to_o refute_v false_a opinion_n to_o instruct_v in_o holy_a life_n and_o correct_v ill_a manner_n therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a martyrol_n or_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o all_o those_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v perfect_a therefore_o much_o more_o for_o the_o people_n argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la nititur_fw-la unica_fw-la illa_fw-la voce_fw-la utilis_fw-la sed_fw-la toto_fw-la sententiae_fw-la complexu_fw-la chamierus_n hitherto_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n absolute_o consider_v now_o follow_v the_o sufficiency_n thereof_o in_o opposition_n to_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o verity_n as_o the_o papist_n speak_v d_o davenant_n premise_v these_o thing_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n 5._o of_o the_o scripture_n 1._o we_o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o which_o god_n have_v cease_v to_o speak_v to_o man_n by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n divine_o inspire_v and_o to_o lay_v open_a new_a revelation_n to_o his_o church_n 2._o we_o grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n live_v and_o preach_v and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o yet_o seal_v their_o gospel_n deliver_v viva_n voice_fw-la be_v no_o less_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n than_o the_o write_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n 3._o we_o do_v not_o reject_v all_o the_o tradition_n 39_o of_o the_o church_n for_o we_o embrace_v certain_a historical_n and_o ceremonial_a one_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o opinion_n of_o faith_n or_o precept_n of_o worship_n can_v be_v confirm_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n 4._o we_o call_v that_o a_o opinion_n of_o faith_n to_o speak_v proper_o and_o strict_o when_o a_o proposition_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n which_o exceed_v the_o capacity_n of_o nature_n and_o be_v propound_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v to_o salvation_n fundamental_a opinion_n be_v those_o which_o by_o a_o usual_a and_o proper_a name_n be_v call_v article_n of_o faith_n 5._o what_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n a_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o proposition_n to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o theological_a faith_n if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o reveal_v as_o that_o the_o sun_n be_v a_o great_a light_n the_o moon_n a_o less_o gen._n 1._o 16._o that_o rachel_n be_v beautiful_a leah_n blear-eyed_a the_o papist_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n of_o imperfection_n charronaeus_fw-la and_o insufficiency_n as_o not_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess._n 4._o decret_a 1._o say_v that_o the_o truth_n and_o discipline_n be_v contain_v in_o libris_fw-la scriptis_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la scripto_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la the_o papist_n 1._o general_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o the_o word_n write_v and_o tradition_n they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n belong_v to_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v neither_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n open_o nor_o secret_o this_o opinion_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o papist_n but_o it_o be_v not_o first_o invent_v by_o they_o the_o jewish_a father_n do_v use_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o it_o have_v be_v say_v of_o old_a mark_v 75._o matth._n 5._o 21._o for_o their_o error_n and_o superstition_n yea_o at_o length_n they_o affirm_v that_o god_n give_v to_o moses_n in_o mount_n sinai_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o cabala_n or_o a_o double_a law_n the_o one_o write_v the_o other_o 1._o unwritten_a the_o tridentin_n father_n sâs_z 4._o do_v command_n tradition_n to_o be_v receive_v with_o the_o same_o reverend_a affection_n and_o piety_n with_o which_o we_o embrace_v the_o scripture_n and_o because_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n refuse_v this_o he_o be_v exclude_v in_o the_o mean_a space_n they_o explain_v not_o what_o those_o tradition_n be_v which_o must_v be_v so_o regard_v none_o of_o they_o will_v ever_o give_v we_o a_o list_n and_o catalogue_n of_o those_o ordinance_n which_o be_v to_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n not_o of_o the_o word_n commit_v to_o writing_n only_o they_o affirm_v in_o general_a whatsoever_o they_o teach_v or_o do_v which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o number_n of_o tradition_n unwritten_a the_o cause_n of_o itself_o be_v manifest_a that_o at_o their_o pleasure_n they_o may_v thrust_v what_o they_o will_v upon_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o tradition_n vide_fw-la whitak_n de_fw-fr script_n contro_fw-la quaest._n 6._o c._n 5._o see_v also_o moulins_n buckler_n of_o faith_n p._n 51._o lindan_n the_o papist_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o the_o church_n if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o but_o only_a tradition_n for_o say_v he_o we_o may_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o tradition_n though_o we_o have_v no_o scripture_n but_o can_v not_o do_v well_o enough_o with_o scripture_n though_o we_o have_v no_o tradition_n baldwin_n say_v a_o testament_n may_v be_v either_o scriptum_n or_o nuncupativum_fw-la set_v down_o in_o writing_n or_o utter_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o a_o nuncupative_a testament_n or_o will_v make_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n without_o writing_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o solemn_a witness_n the_o solemn_a witness_n of_o christ_n testament_n be_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n let_v papist_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v by_o they_o that_o part_n of_o the_o testament_n of_o christ_n be_v unwritten_a any_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v conceive_v that_o the_o scripture_n make_v most_o for_o they_o who_o stand_v most_o for_o their_o authority_n and_o perfection_n as_o all_o the_o reform_a divine_n do_v not_o only_o affirm_v but_o also_o confirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o only_o a_o most_o perfect_a but_o the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n titus_n 1._o 2._o rom._n 3._o 4._o god_n can_v lie_v and_o let_v god_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n that_o be_v subject_n to_o error_n and_o falsehood_n every_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n must_v have_v a_o certain_a and_o
infallible_a ground_n there_o be_v none_o such_o of_o supernatural_a truth_n but_o the_o scripture_n because_o our_o adversary_n unwritten_a do_v contend_v for_o tradition_n not_o write_v hot_o and_o zealous_o against_o the_o total_a perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v thrust_v upon_o we_o many_o point_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o irrefragable_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o large_o to_o consider_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o first_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n greek_a and_o latin_a which_o be_v translate_v tradition_n and_o then_o to_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v controvert_v between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n the_o greek_a word_n signify_v tradition_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v 8._o use_v only_o in_o these_o place_n matth._n 15._o 2_o 3_o 6._o mark_v 7._o 3_o 5_o 8_o 9_o 13._o 1_o cor._n 11._o 2._o gal._n 1._o 14._o colos_n 2._o 8._o 2_o thess._n 2._o 15._o and_o 3._o 6._o and_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a be_v render_v traditio_fw-la mat._n 15._o 2_o 3_o 6._o mark_v 7._o 3_o 5_o 8_o 9_o 13._o gal._n 1._o 14._o col._n 2._o 6._o 2_o thess._n 2._o 15._o and_o 3._o 6._o and_o praecepta_fw-la 1_o cor._n 11._o 2._o whereto_o the_o rhemists_n translation_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o bare_a translation_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a do_v whole_o agree_v use_v the_o word_n tradition_n every_o where_o except_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 2._o where_o they_o use_v the_o word_n precept_n but_o set_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o word_n tradition_n arias_n montanus_n in_o his_o interlineal_a translation_n do_v render_v it_o traditio_fw-la beza_n do_v common_o express_v it_o by_o the_o word_n traditio_fw-la in_o the_o english_a geneva_n bible_n we_o translate_v it_o by_o the_o word_n instruction_n tradition_n call_v man_n precept_n tradition_n the_o apostle_n doctrine_n ordinance_n or_o instruction_n not_o that_o we_o fear_v the_o word_n tradition_n but_o because_o we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o simple_a deceive_v as_o though_o the_o unwritten_a verity_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v thereby_o commend_v or_o as_o though_o we_o have_v some_o honourable_a conceit_n of_o they_o and_o what_o we_o do_v herein_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n do_v give_v we_o free_a liberty_n to_o do_v in_o our_o last_o english_a translation_n we_o use_v the_o word_n tradition_n as_o often_o as_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a or_o the_o rhemist_n have_v do_v not_o that_o we_o be_v drive_v by_o fear_n or_o shame_n to_o alter_v what_o be_v do_v before_o but_o because_o we_o will_v cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o carp_n at_o our_o translation_n though_o never_o so_o unjust_a first_o we_o contend_v not_o about_o the_o name_n bishop_n tradition_n the_o word_n may_v lawful_o be_v use_v if_o the_o sense_n affix_v thereto_o be_v lawful_a 2._o all_o tradition_n unwritten_a be_v not_o simple_o condemn_v by_o we_o 3._o the_o apostle_n deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n many_o observation_n dispensable_a and_o alterable_a according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o person_n appertain_v to_o order_n and_o comeliness_n only_o we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n that_o they_o be_v not_o general_a concern_v all_o church_n 4._o we_o receive_v the_o number_n and_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o book_n divine_a and_o canonical_a as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n but_o the_o divine_a truth_n of_o those_o book_n be_v in_o itself_o clear_a and_o evident_a unto_o we_o not_o depend_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n the_o book_n of_o scripture_n have_v not_o their_o authority_n quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la from_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o win_v credit_n of_o themselves_o and_o yield_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o man_n of_o their_o divine_a truth_n whence_o we_o judge_v the_o church_n that_o receive_v they_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o number_n author_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o part_n of_o those_o book_n we_o receive_v as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n 5._o the_o continue_a practice_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v neither_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n nor_o the_o example_n of_o such_o practice_n express_o there_o deliver_v though_o the_o ground_n reason_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o such_o practice_n be_v there_o contain_v and_o the_o benefit_n and_o good_a that_o follow_v of_o it_o we_o receive_v upon_o tradition_n though_o the_o thing_n itself_o we_o receive_v not_o for_o tradition_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n which_o may_v be_v name_v a_o tradition_n because_o it_o be_v not_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v baptize_v infant_n nor_o any_o express_a precept_n there_o find_v that_o they_o shall_v so_o do_v yet_o be_v not_o this_o so_o receive_v by_o bare_a and_o naked_a tradition_n but_o that_o we_o find_v the_o scripture_n to_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o bellarmine_n and_o maldonat_n 15._o both_o do_v confess_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o maldonat_a conclude_v nobis_fw-la verò_fw-la traditio_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la bellarmine_n birth-priviledge_n as_o whitaker_n show_v contradict_v himself_o for_o first_o he_o say_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o after_o that_o the_o catholic_n can_v prove_v baptism_n of_o infant_n from_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o head_n ibid._n we_o may_v refer_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o lordsday_n the_o precept_n whereof_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n though_o the_o practice_n be_v and_o if_o for_o that_o cause_n any_o shall_v name_v it_o a_o tradition_n we_o will_v not_o contend_v about_o the_o word_n if_o he_o grant_v withal_o that_o the_o example_n apostolical_a have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n as_o imply_v a_o common_a equity_n concern_v we_o no_o less_o than_o it_o do_v they_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v call_v the_o summary_n comprehension_n of_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n chamier_n common_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n a_o tradition_n we_o will_v not_o contend_v about_o it_o for_o although_o every_o part_n thereof_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o distinct_a explication_n of_o those_o principal_a article_n gather_v into_o a_o epitome_n wherein_o be_v imply_v and_o whence_o be_v infer_v all_o conclusion_n theological_a be_v a_o act_n humane_a not_o divine_a and_o in_o that_o sense_n may_v be_v call_v a_o tradition_n but_o let_v it_o be_v note_v withal_o that_o we_o admit_v it_o not_o to_o have_v that_o credit_n as_o now_o it_o have_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o creed_n itself_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o be_v a_o perfect_a canon_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n by_o tradition_n be_v note_v 1._o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v by_o man_n divine_o inspire_v and_o 13._o immediate_o call_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o lively_a voice_n or_o by_o write_v 2._o in_o special_a it_o note_v the_o word_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o writing_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 3._o 3._o it_o signify_v rite_n express_o contain_v in_o writing_n act._n 6._o 14._o 4._o it_o betoken_v that_o which_o be_v not_o commit_v to_o write_v but_o only_o deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n 5._o it_o signify_v that_o which_o be_v invent_v and_o deliver_v by_o man_n not_o immediate_o call_v in_o scripture_n tradition_n be_v take_v 1._o in_o good_a part_n for_o any_o rite_n or_o doctrine_n of_o god_n deliver_v to_o his_o church_n either_o by_o word_n or_o writing_n whether_o it_o concern_v faith_n and_o good_a work_n or_o the_o external_a government_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o thess._n 2._o 15._o 1_o cor._n 11._o 15._o and_o 23._o 2._o in_o ill_a part_n it_o note_v the_o vain_a idle_a and_o unwarrantable_a invention_n of_o man_n whether_o doctrine_n or_o rite_n mat._n 15._o 3._o mar._n 7._o 8_o 9_o when_o the_o father_n speak_v reverent_o of_o tradition_n by_o the_o word_n tradition_n either_o they_o understand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o also_o be_v a_o tradition_n it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n leave_v unto_o we_o 15._o or_o by_o tradition_n they_o understand_v observation_n touch_v ecclesiastical_a policy_n du_n moulin_n reason_n confirm_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n against_o popish_a tradition_n 1._o the_o whole_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 24._o which_o be_v not_o true_a if_o any_o doctrine_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o reveal_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 2._o
the_o prophet_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n condemn_v tradition_n isa._n 29._o 13._o mat._n it_o 15._o 3_o 6._o col._n 2._o 8._o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v christ_n oppose_v the_o commandment_n and_o scripture_n to_o tradition_n therefore_o he_o condemn_v tradition_n not_o write_v if_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o add_v to_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n ult_n then_o much_o less_o may_v we_o add_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n so_o much_o increase_v since_o 3._o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n only_o can_v be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o scripture_n all_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o precept_n of_o manner_n concern_v substance_n of_o religion_n proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n only_o mat._n 16._o 17._o 1_o cor._n 2._o 9_o 10_o 11._o chamierus_n gal._n 1._o 8._o as_o in_o this_o place_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v nothing_o receive_v beside_o that_o which_o he_o preach_v so_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 6._o he_o will_v have_v nothing_o admit_v above_o or_o more_o than_o that_o which_o be_v write_v see_v act._n 26._o 22._o john_n 20._o ult_n whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n may_v be_v find_v in_o scripture_n since_o full_a and_o perfect_a faith_n arise_v from_o thence_o which_o eternal_a salvation_n follow_v bellarmine_n say_v john_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o write_v not_o all_o because_o those_o suffice_v to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n those_o word_n indeed_o in_o ver_fw-la 30._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n miracle_n but_o those_o in_o ver_fw-la 31._o rather_o be_v to_o be_v general_o interpret_v for_o the_o history_n only_o of_o the_o miracle_n suffice_v not_o to_o obtain_v faith_n or_o life_n the_o question_n betwixt_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o be_v de_fw-fr ipsa_fw-la doctrina_fw-la tradita_fw-la 1._o non_fw-la de_fw-la tradendi_fw-la modo_fw-la touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v not_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o deliver_v it_o and_o of_o doctrine_n deliver_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n they_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v doctrinal_a tradition_n or_o tradition_n contain_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o substantial_a matter_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o religion_n not_o find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n viz._n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o image_n papal_a monarchy_n bellarmine_n and_o before_o he_o 17._o peresius_n distinguish_v tradition_n both_o from_o the_o author_n and_o the_o matter_n from_o the_o author_n into_o divine_a apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a from_o the_o matter_n into_o those_o which_o be_v concern_v faith_n and_o concern_v manner_n into_o perpetual_a and_o temporal_a universal_a and_o particular_a necessary_a and_o free_a divine_a tradition_n that_o be_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n apostle_n of_o god_n any_o of_o which_o we_o deny_v to_o be_v but_o what_o be_v comprise_v in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n apostolic_a tradition_n say_v they_o be_v such_o ordinance_n as_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v for_o ceremony_n and_o usage_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o nativity_n death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n the_o alteration_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o jew_n sabbath_n to_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n ecclesiastical_a ancient_a custom_n which_o by_o degree_n through_o the_o people_n consent_n 6._o obtain_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n tradition_n concern_v faith_n as_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o there_o be_v only_o four_o gospel_n of_o manner_n as_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n make_v in_o the_o forehead_n fast_n and_o feast_n to_o be_v observe_v on_o certain_a day_n perpetual_a which_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n temporal_a for_o a_o certain_a time_n as_o the_o observation_n of_o certain_a legal_a ceremony_n even_o to_o the_o full_a publish_n of_o the_o gospel_n universal_a tradition_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v keep_v as_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n whit_n sontide_n and_o other_o great_a feast_n particular_a which_o be_v deliver_v to_o one_o or_o more_o church_n as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n fast_v on_o the_o sabbath-day_n which_o be_v keep_v only_o at_o rome_n necessary_a tradition_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o precept_n that_o easter_n chamier_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n free_a which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o council_n as_o sprinkle_v of_o holy_a water_n object_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o perfect_a with_o a_o perfection_n of_o part_n because_o many_o part_n be_v either_o defective_a or_o excessive_a 1._o some_o labour_n with_o a_o defect_n as_o genes_n 11._o 12._o a_o person_n be_v omit_v in_o the_o 18._o genealogy_n of_o canaan_n which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o arphaxad_n but_o it_o be_v reckon_v 36._o in_o luke_n in_o christ_n genealogy_n not_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o defect_n answ._n luke_n reckon_v it_o according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n junius_n in_o ibid._n his_o parallel_n will_v have_v the_o fault_n to_o be_v in_o the_o septuagint_n who_o luke_n follow_v not_o approve_v of_o their_o error_n but_o yield_v to_o the_o time_n lest_o the_o gospel_n otherwise_o shall_v have_v be_v prejudice_v but_o beza_n opinion_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v approve_v of_o that_o this_o word_n be_v insert_v from_o the_o ignorance_n of_o those_o who_o undertake_v to_o correct_v this_o text_n according_a to_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o seventy_o interpreter_n for_o in_o a_o ancient_a manuscript_n which_o beza_n follow_v this_o word_n canaan_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v therefore_o he_o omit_v it_o in_o his_o translation_n and_o so_o have_v our_o great_a english_a bible_n object_n there_o be_v something_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n deut._n 4._o 2._o therefore_o there_o be_v excess_n as_o well_o as_o defect_n for_o many_o book_n which_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v canonical_a be_v add_v answ._n he_o do_v not_o forbid_v add_v by_o god_n command_n but_o from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n for_o god_n himself_o add_v afterward_o the_o papist_n argument_n for_o tradition_n answer_v object_n bellarmine_n say_v religion_n be_v preserve_v for_o two_o thousand_o year_n from_o chamierus_n adam_n to_o moses_n only_o by_o tradition_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a ans._n by_o the_o like_a reason_n i_o may_v argue_v that_o religion_n be_v long_o preserve_v not_o only_o without_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o without_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o the_o like_a institution_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a yet_o none_o of_o we_o hold_v the_o scripture_n simple_o necessary_a 2._o it_o be_v false_a that_o religion_n be_v preserve_v all_o that_o while_n by_o ordinary_a tradition_n only_o for_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o god_n sound_v most_o perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n be_v convey_v successive_o from_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n which_o live_v voice_n of_o god_n by_o little_a and_o little_o cease_v write_v afterward_o succeed_v and_o have_v the_o same_o necessity_n now_o which_o god_n live_v voice_n have_v before_o object_n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v commend_v from_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a but_o so_o be_v tradition_n ergò_fw-la they_o be_v necessary_a john_n 16._o 12._o i_o have_v yet_o many_o thing_n to_o say_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o now_o therefore_o say_v they_o the_o lord_n speak_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v it_o answ._n 1._o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o tell_v they_o which_o he_o have_v not_o teach_v they_o before_o but_o which_o they_o be_v not_o now_o so_o well_o capable_a of_o for_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o teach_v they_o that_o which_o they_o understand_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o need_v to_o be_v further_o teach_v of_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o shall_v not_o teach_v they_o any_o new_a thing_n that_o christ_n have_v not_o teach_v but_o only_o make_v they_o understand_v that_o which_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ._n 2._o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v they_o any_o thing_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v not_o before_o speak_v unto_o they_o of_o yet_o that_o make_v nothing_o for_o tradition_n see_v that_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n teach_v they_o he_o teach_v they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 3._o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v have_v teach_v the_o apostle_n some_o thing_n which_o neither_o
sai_z dr_n twisse_n bucer_n 45._o also_o be_v a_o excellent_a divine_a he_o have_v write_v a_o twofold_a exposition_n on_o all_o the_o psalm_n one_o more_o large_a and_o paraphrastical_a the_o other_o brief_a and_o ad_fw-la verbum_fw-la francis_n junius_n 1_o the_o very_a oracle_n of_o textual_a and_o scholastical_a divinity_n as_o dr_n hall_n call_v he_o epist._n 7._o decad._n 1_o vatablus_n his_o annotation_n upon_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o beza_n on_o the_o new_a be_v commend_v by_o zanchy_a in_o his_o miscellany_n but_o arnoldus_fw-la boot_n in_o his_o index_n autorum_fw-la before_o his_o animadversiones_fw-la sacrae_fw-la say_v robert_n stephens_n and_o not_o vatablus_n be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o scholia_fw-la which_o be_v in_o vatablus_n his_o bible_n doctus_fw-la vatablus_n prae_fw-la caeteris_fw-la quos_fw-la adhuc_fw-la videre_fw-la contigit_fw-la omnibus_fw-la abstrusa_fw-la quaequâ_n in_fw-la psalmis_fw-la explicuit_fw-la partim_fw-la svo_fw-la sano_fw-la judicio_fw-la partim_fw-la doctissimorum_fw-la hebraeorum_n testimonio_fw-la quem_fw-la etiam_fw-la admirandus_fw-la calvinus_n studiose_fw-la sequitur_fw-la ferè_fw-la ubique_fw-la quasi_fw-la à _fw-la sententia_fw-la vatabli_fw-la non_fw-la tutum_fw-la esset_fw-la discedere_fw-la ford_n in_o ps._n 45._o 1._o quid_fw-la hac_fw-la phrasi_fw-la denotetur_fw-la optimè_fw-la exposuit_fw-la d._n beza_n suis_fw-la in_o novum_n testamentum_fw-la nunquem_fw-la satis_fw-la laudatis_fw-la notis_fw-la constantin_n l'empereur_n in_o dan._n 2._o 8._o see_v more_o of_o he_o in_o zanchy_n epistle_n amama_n paulus_n fagius_n drusius_n ludovicus_n capellus_n livelie_o cameron_n ludovicus_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr have_v be_v great_a light_n and_o by_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o tongue_n have_v excellent_o interpret_v scripture_n peter_n martyr_n lavater_n musculus_fw-la zanchy_a paraeus_n rollock_n rivet_n be_v sound_a expositor_n exit_fw-la omnibus_fw-la antiquis_fw-la &_o recentioribus_fw-la medullam_fw-la variarum_fw-la interpretationum_fw-la &_o circa_fw-la eos_fw-la disceptationem_fw-la collegit_fw-la willetus_fw-la in_o hexaplis_fw-la ad_fw-la genesin_n exodum_fw-la leviticum_fw-la danielem_fw-la epistolam_fw-la ad_fw-la romanos_fw-la in_fw-la libros_fw-la samuelis_fw-la sibi_fw-la dissimilis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o compendio_fw-la atque_fw-la alia_fw-la plane_n methodo_fw-la commentatur_fw-la optandum_fw-la esset_fw-la telam_fw-la illam_fw-la à _fw-la willeto_n tam_fw-la foeliciter_fw-la coeptam_fw-la eadem_fw-la methodo_fw-la in_o reliquos_fw-la scripturae_fw-la libros_fw-la pertexi_fw-la voetius_fw-la biblioth_n theol._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o 4._o for_o popish_a expositor_n aquinas_n apoc._n be_v esteem_v by_o the_o papist_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o romish_a school_n 22._o who_o for_o his_o profound_a learning_n and_o search_n into_o the_o mystery_n of_o all_o divinity_n they_o surname_v 2._o angelical_a he_o be_v the_o first_o thorow-papist_n of_o name_n that_o ever_o write_v and_o with_o his_o rare_a gift_n of_o wit_n learning_n and_o industry_n do_v set_v out_o popery_n most_o maximo_n &_o altissimo_fw-la ingenio_fw-la vir_fw-la cui_fw-la ad_fw-la plenam_fw-la absolutamque_fw-la totius_fw-la tam_fw-la divinae_fw-la quam_fw-la humanae_fw-la eruditionis_fw-la gloriam_fw-la solus_fw-la defuit_fw-la linguarum_fw-la &_o eloquentiae_fw-la usus_fw-la quem_fw-la eruditi_fw-la istius_fw-la saeculi_fw-la utpote_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la studiis_fw-la intenti_fw-la neglexere_fw-la sixtus_n senensis_n vide_fw-la plura_fw-la ibid._n luther_n on_o gen._n 9_o chief_a commend_v lyra_n for_o follow_v the_o literal_a sense_n nicolauâ_n lyranus_fw-la vir_fw-la tanta_fw-la tamque_fw-la pura_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o germana_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la scientia_fw-la praeditiu_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la exponenda_fw-la nullum_fw-la habeat_fw-la illius_fw-la temporis_fw-la parem_fw-la rainold_n de_fw-fr lib._n apoc._n tom._n 1._o praelect_a 21._o vide_fw-la plura_fw-la tom._n 1._o praelect_a 42._o he_o be_v a_o jew_n convert_v exit_fw-la antiquioribus_fw-la tanquam_fw-la universales_fw-la &_o commune_v commentatores_fw-la habiti_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la lyranus_fw-la &_o glossa_fw-la voetius_fw-la in_o biblioth_n theol._n jansenius_n eruditus_fw-la &_o moderatus_fw-la 133._o interpres_fw-la neque_fw-la pontificiorum_fw-la quisquam_fw-la doctius_fw-la interpretatus_fw-la est_fw-la evangelicam_fw-la historiam_fw-la rainold_n de_fw-fr lib._n apoc._n tom._n 2._o praelect_v 194._o cajetane_v go_v over_o all_o the_o scripture_n chamierus_n save_v the_o canticle_n and_o prophet_n which_o die_v he_o leave_v begin_v and_o the_o revelation_n quam_fw-la de_fw-la industria_fw-la attingere_fw-la noluit_fw-la he_o be_v both_o a_o learned_a and_o moderate_a papist_n as_o chamier_n and_o whitaker_n both_o show_n he_o be_v chief_o intent_n on_o the_o literal_a sense_n superasse_fw-la and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n of_o which_o tongue_n he_o have_v little_a knowledge_n but_o have_v by_o he_o those_o that_o be_v skilled_a in_o the_o hebrew_n who_o will_v interpret_v ad_fw-la verbum_fw-la not_o only_o exact_o but_o superstitious_o and_o often_o absurd_o which_o often_o draw_v the_o like_a exposition_n from_o the_o cardinal_n tostatus_n be_v admirable_a for_o his_o deep_a skill_n and_o almost_o incredible_a pain_n in_o interpret_n holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v now_o five_o papist_n join_v together_o in_o several_a volume_n on_o the_o whole_a scripture_n immanuel_n sa_o estius_n gagneius_n tirinus_n and_o menochius_fw-la the_o last_o of_o which_o grotius_n commend_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o annotation_n on_o the_o old_a testament_n estius_n do_v excellent_o on_o all_o the_o epistle_n the_o commentary_n of_o immanuel_n sa_n the_o jesuit_n upon_o the_o bible_n be_v short_a than_o the_o text_n itself_o familiam_fw-la ducant_fw-la inter_fw-la commentatores_fw-la jansenius_n &_o maldonatus_n montac_n analecta_fw-la exercit._fw-la 6._o sect._n 4._o maldonate_fw-it do_v well_o on_o the_o evangelist_n but_o be_v a_o most_o supercilious_a writer_n and_o no_o marvel_n since_o he_o be_v for_o his_o country_n a_o spaniard_n 10._o and_o his_o profession_n a_o jesuit_n masius_n oâomat_n have_v write_v learned_o on_o joshua_n quanta_fw-la vir_fw-la ille_fw-la linguae_fw-la graecae_fw-la sed_fw-la praesertim_fw-la hebraicae_fw-la rabbinicae_fw-la &_o syriacae_n cognition_n fuerit_fw-la imbutus_fw-la nemini_fw-la docto_fw-la opinor_fw-la incognitum_fw-la morinus_n lib._n 1._o exercitat_fw-la 9_o c._n 6._o &_o exercit_fw-la 1._o c._n 4._o andraeas_n masius_n linguae_fw-la hebraicae_fw-la &_o syriacae_fw-la peritissimus_fw-la atque_fw-la in_o lectione_n rabbinica_n egregiè_fw-la exercitatus_fw-la the_o popish_a postil_v be_v the_o burden_n of_o many_o camel_n as_o lipsius_n speak_v of_o the_o apoc._n book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o be_v sit_o style_v by_o godly_a divine_n pigrorum_fw-la pulvinaria_fw-la vide_fw-la zepperi_fw-la artem_fw-la habendi_fw-la &_o andiendi_fw-la conciones_fw-la sacras_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o pag._n 38_o 39_o etc._n etc._n minister_n to_o all_o the_o mean_n former_o mention_v for_o the_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n must_v add_v a_o conscionable_a practice_n of_o what_o they_o know_v and_o must_v in_o all_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n seek_v the_o people_n edification_n the_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o people_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o 1._o if_o they_o be_v learn_v they_o may_v make_v use_n of_o most_o of_o the_o former_a mean_n prescribe_v to_o minister_n 2._o such_o as_o be_v unskilful_a and_o know_v not_o how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o those_o mean_n be_v discourse_n 1._o diligent_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o which_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v 1._o antecedent_n preparation_n that_o they_o come_v to_o the_o read_n and_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o prayer_n and_o great_a reverence_n rely_v on_o the_o divine_a promise_n for_o the_o enlighten_v of_o their_o mind_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o scripture_n may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n rev._n 1._o 1._o see_v rev._n 5._o 5._o 2._o the_o adjunct_n of_o read_v which_o be_v 1._o chief_a attention_n in_o read_v and_o a_o pious_a disposition_n and_o spiritual_a frame_n 13._o of_o the_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o understand_v only_o but_o cordial_o affect_v what_o they_o understand_v 2._o application_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o examination_n correction_n and_o amendment_n 17._o of_o their_o own_o life_n 3._o diligent_a meditation_n 4._o confer_v of_o it_o with_o other_o and_o catechise_n 7._o 2._o they_o ought_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o those_o that_o be_v more_o skilful_a than_o themselves_o and_o to_o consult_v with_o the_o best_a commentary_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o read_v they_o judicious_o we_o teach_v concern_v our_o mean_n that_o they_o all_o together_o do_v make_v a_o perfect_a way_n whereby_o we_o may_v find_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n prescribe_v this_o method_n and_o course_n to_o be_v take_v in_o expound_v of_o whitaker_n scripture_n which_o consist_v in_o four_o rule_n the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n the_o consonant_a interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n last_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n consist_v partly_o of_o the_o scripture_n partly_o of_o tradition_n unwritten_a in_o all_o these_o mean_v the_o pope_n be_v implicit_o understand_v for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v 9_o that_o which_o the_o
argument_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n authoritas_fw-la which_o say_v they_o do_v infallible_o propound_v unto_o we_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o hermanus_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o more_o worth_a than_o aesop_n fable_n without_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o other_o science_n there_o be_v always_o some_o principle_n per_fw-la se_fw-la nota_fw-la &_o indemonstrabilia_fw-la whence_o other_o thing_n be_v prove_v so_o in_o divinity_n all_o conclusion_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n and_o practice_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n prove_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o natural_a light_n scripture_n manifest_v their_o divine_a original_n whence_o they_o be_v and_o their_o right_a meaning_n how_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v they_o be_v like_o light_n primum_fw-la visibile_fw-la which_o make_v all_o other_o thing_n manifest_a and_o itself_o too_o by_o its_o own_o proper_a quality_n 1._o the_o church_n rather_o depend_v on_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o object_n not_o principle_n of_o divinity_n the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n ephes._n 5._o 24._o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n col._n 3._o 16._o 2._o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v word_n of_o truth_n dan._n 10._o 21._o some_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v word_n of_o error_n isa._n 1._o 21_o 24._o &_o 3._o 8_o 9_o &_o 5._o 13._o but_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v always_o truth_n be_v great_a than_o of_o he_o who_o sometime_o lie_v ergo_fw-la 11._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n goodness_n itself_o can_v deceive_v wisdom_n itself_o can_v be_v deceive_v god_n be_v both_o tit._n 1._o 2._o the_o voice_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o voice_n 222._o of_o god_n 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o but_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o man_n act._n 14._o 14._o &_o 15._o 17._o &_o 17._o 30._o 3._o faith_n and_o a_o firm_a consolation_n in_o temptation_n ought_v to_o rely_v on_o a_o sure_a that_o be_v a_o divine_a foundation_n for_o every_o humane_a testimony_n be_v uncertain_a 4._o in_o vain_a shall_v we_o dispute_v against_o the_o wicked_a concern_v religion_n and_o divine_a truth_n if_o we_o shall_v say_v it_o come_v from_o god_n because_o we_o affirm_v so_o 5._o this_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n john_n 5._o 34_o 35._o christ_n in_o his_o humiliation_n do_v not_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o john_n much_o less_o will_v he_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o other_o now_o he_o be_v glorify_v joh._n 5._o 34_o 35_o 36._o 1_o cor._n 2._o 4_o 5._o 1_o joh._n 5._o 9_o 6._o the_o authority_n prove_v be_v great_a more_o certain_a and_o more_o know_v than_o the_o conclusion_n prove_v by_o the_o same_o authoritas_fw-la probans_fw-la be_v great_a than_o probata_fw-la the_o papist_n to_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n cham._n for_o i_o demand_v whence_o do_v we_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n err_v not_o in_o deliver_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o answer_v it_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o can_v err_v in_o its_o decree_n but_o how_o appear_v it_o that_o it_o be_v so_o govern_v always_o they_o answer_v god_n have_v promise_v it_o and_o then_o they_o allege_v those_o 13._o place_n to_o prove_v it_o obj._n 1_o the_o church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v before_o moses_n ergo_fw-la it_o have_v great_a authority_n ans._n 1._o the_o prophet_n and_o john_n baptist_n be_v ancient_a than_o christ_n yet_o not_o of_o great_a authority_n 2._o consider_v the_o word_n 1._o quoad_fw-la formale_a 22._o externum_fw-la as_o write_v formaliter_fw-la and_o clothe_v with_o word_n so_o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o scripture_n 2._o quoad_fw-la formale_a internum_fw-la the_o matter_n and_o sense_n or_o meaning_n so_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v and_o govern_v by_o it_o 1_o pet._n 1_o 23._o joh._n 17._o 20._o jam._n 1_o 18._o semen_n semper_fw-la sobole_fw-la illa_fw-la cujus_fw-la est_fw-la sâmen_fw-la antiquus_fw-la esse_fw-la necâsse_fw-la est_fw-la in_o the_o thing_n itself_o the_o be_v and_o substance_n of_o the_o word_n be_v before_o the_o church_n although_o in_o this_o circumstance_n and_o manner_n of_o be_v it_o be_v after_o obj._n 2._o non_fw-la crederem_fw-la evangelio_n nisi_fw-la i_o commoveret_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la authoritas_fw-la chamierus_n say_v augustine_n ans._n these_o word_n say_v whitaker_n be_v so_o well_o know_v to_o the_o papist_n that_o one_o can_v hardly_o exchange_v three_o word_n with_o they_o but_o they_o will_v produce_v they_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o we_o may_v at_o the_o first_o be_v much_o move_v to_o receive_v and_o hearken_v to_o the_o scripture_n because_o the_o church_n give_v testimony_n of_o they_o as_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n by_o her_o speech_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o mean_n of_o move_v the_o samaritan_n to_o believe_v but_o when_o the_o man_n of_o samaria_n have_v hear_v christ_n himself_o speak_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o more_o for_o his_o own_o word_n then_o the_o woman_n john_n 4._o 39_o 41._o in_o which_o sense_n those_o word_n of_o augustine_n so_o frequent_o quote_v by_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v augustine_n speak_v this_o of_o himself_o be_v a_o manichee_n thing_n when_o he_o be_v a_o manichee_n he_o be_v first_o move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o have_v vever_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o be_v a_o introduction_n unto_o he_o not_o that_o his_o faith_n rest_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o final_a stay_n but_o that_o it_o cause_v he_o so_o far_o to_o respect_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o listen_v unto_o it_o and_o with_o a_o kind_n of_o acquisite_a and_o humane_a faith_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o he_o be_v thereby_o fit_v christ._n to_o a_o better_a illumination_n by_o force_n whereof_o he_o may_v more_o certain_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v of_o god_n but_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o father_n in_o one_o place_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n shall_v be_v of_o that_o force_n it_o be_v strange_a we_o deny_v not_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o external_a mean_n to_o move_v we_o to_o embrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a scripturas_fw-la mean_n when_o we_o call_v the_o scripture_n canonical_a we_o call_v they_o not_o so_o passive_o because_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n by_o man_n and_o accept_v of_o but_o active_o because_o they_o prescribe_v a_o canon_n and_o rule_n to_o we_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o scripture_n stand_v in_o four_o thing_n 1._o to_o distinguish_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a although_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o only_a or_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la chamier_n be_v reject_v 2._o to_o be_v a_o faithful_a keeper_n of_o those_o book_n which_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n like_o a_o notary_n which_o keep_v public_a write_n 3._o to_o publish_v declare_v and_o teach_v the_o truth_n as_o a_o crier_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n ought_v to_o pronounce_v the_o king_n edict_n but_o to_o pretermit_v add_v or_o alter_v nothing_o matth._n 28._o 19_o 20._o act_n 8._o 35._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o this_o church_n here_o be_v not_o that_o church_n which_o the_o papist_n make_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n neither_o the_o church_n representative_a which_o be_v a_o general_a council_n nor_o the_o church_n virtual_a which_o they_o imagine_v to_o be_v the_o amesius_n pope_n but_o the_o church_n essential_a secundarium_fw-la the_o congregation_n of_o all_o faithful_a believer_n the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o he_o call_v it_o the_o apostle_n here_o speak_v of_o a_o pillar_n not_o more_o architectonico_fw-la understand_v by_o it_o some_o essential_a piece_n of_o the_o building_n but_o more_o forensi_fw-la such_o a_o post_n or_o 557._o pillar_n on_o which_o table_n and_o proclamation_n use_v to_o hang._n in_o old_a time_n the_o gentile_n use_v to_o write_v their_o law_n in_o table_n and_o so_o hang_v they_o upon_o pillar_n of_o stone_n that_o the_o people_n may_v read_v they_o as_o proclamation_n be_v nail_v to_o post_n in_o market_n to_n the_o apostle_n describe_v the_o church_n liken_v it_o to_o one_o of_o these_o pillar_n who_o use_n be_v to_o show_v what_o hang_v thereon_o it_o be_v a_o pillar_n not_o because_o it_o hold_v up_o tabernacle_n but_o hold_v forth_o the_o truth_n as_o
the_o scripture_n and_o often_o to_o apply_v it_o let_v we_o all_o learn_v constant_o to_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o the_o write_n of_o god_n which_o if_o zepperus_n we_o strive_v to_o do_v in_o a_o right_a manner_n we_o shall_v attain_v true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o also_o grace_n and_o help_v to_o walk_v in_o that_o way_n if_o the_o lord_n shall_v deny_v to_o any_o man_n the_o public_a help_n of_o preach_v and_o conference_n yet_o if_o that_o man_n shall_v constant_o read_v the_o word_n pray_v to_o god_n to_o teach_v he_o and_o guide_v he_o by_o it_o and_o strive_v to_o follow_v it_o in_o his_o life_n he_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o attain_v save_v grace_n the_o word_n will_v illighten_v and_o convert_v but_o if_o god_n afford_v public_a preach_v and_o interpretation_n we_o must_v use_v that_o too_o as_o a_o principal_a ordinance_n let_v we_o all_o read_v hebrâiâ_n the_o scripture_n 1._o with_o hearty_a prayer_n to_o god_n to_o direct_v we_o and_o open_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o to_o we_o well_o psa._n 119._o 18._o prov._n 2._o 3._o jam._n 1._o 5_o 17._o though_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o preacher_n yet_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v the_o scripture_n luk._n 4._o 45._o and_o with_o a_o resolution_n to_o put_v in_o practice_n that_o which_o we_o learn_v jam._n 1._o 25._o matth._n 7._o 24._o john_n 7._o 17._o and_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o word_n read_v god_n power_n to_o our_o edification_n and_o salvation_n only_o a_o spiritual_a understanding_n can_v discern_v a_o excellency_n in_o the_o scripture_n nunquam_fw-la pauli_n sensum_fw-la ingredieris_fw-la nisi_fw-la pauli_n spiritum_fw-la imbiberis_fw-la bern._n 2._o diligent_o attend_v unto_o read_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 13_o 15._o john_n 5._o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n whether_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v a_o metaphor_n from_o hunt_a dog_n or_o from_o digger_n in_o mine_n both_o import_n diligence_n it_o be_v a_o solemn_a speech_n use_v in_o holy_a action_n hoc_fw-la age_n the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n may_v be_v read_v when_o their_o anniversary_n day_n be_v celebrate_v whence_o the_o name_n of_o legend_n chamier_n we_o shall_v observe_v the_o scope_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n and_o phrase_n and_o compare_v one_o place_n with_o another_o 3._o orderly_o that_o we_o may_v be_v better_o acquaint_v with_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v read_v on_o in_o chronicle_n and_o ezra_n and_o other_o place_n wherein_o be_v 12._o nothing_o but_o name_n and_o genealogy_n to_o show_v our_o obedience_n to_o god_n in_o read_v over_o all_o his_o sacred_a word_n and_o we_o shall_v after_o reap_v profit_n by_o that_o we_o understand_v not_o for_o the_o present_a though_o it_o will_v be_v convenient_a to_o begin_v with_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o more_o plain_a before_o we_o read_v the_o old_a 4._o with_o faith_n pontificio_fw-la heb._n 4._o 2._o the_o word_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o four_o part_n 1._o history_n 2._o commandment_n 3._o promise_n 4._o threat_n every_o thing_n in_o god_n word_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v all_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v of_o nothing_o only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n heb._n 11._o 3._o and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o man_n howsoever_o they_o die_v shall_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n job_n 19_o 26._o 2._o all_o precept_n genes_n 22._o 6._o abraham_n obey_v that_o commandment_n though_o strange_a 3._o all_o promise_n as_o that_o god_n can_v give_v abraham_n when_o he_o be_v a_o hundred_o year_n old_a a_o seed_n and_o posterity_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o innumerable_a as_o the_o state_n in_o the_o firmament_n gen._n 15._o 5._o and_o that_o by_o sarah_n a_o old_a and_o barren_a woman_n gen._n 17._o 16._o abraham_n and_o sarah_n believe_v it_o rom._n 4._o 20_o 21._o heb._n 11._o 11._o 4._o threaten_n ibid._n as_o that_o gen._n 6._o 13_o 17._o though_o unlikely_a noah_n believe_v it_o 2_o pet._n 2._o 5._o because_o god_n have_v say_v it_o heb._n 11._o 7._o and_o that_o jonah_n 3._o 4._o the_o people_n of_o nineveh_n believe_v v_o 5._o in_o narrando_fw-la gravitas_fw-la in_fw-la imperando_fw-la authoritas_fw-la in_fw-la promittendo_fw-la liberalitas_fw-la in_fw-la minando_fw-la sâveritas_fw-la spanhem_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr officio_fw-la theologi_fw-la we_o read_v therefore_o of_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_v psal._n 119._o 49._o faith_n in_o the_o commandment_n psal._n 119._o 66._o faith_n in_o the_o threaten_n heb._n 11._o 6._o but_o faith_n in_o the_o threaten_n be_v not_o so_o much_o urge_v because_o guilty_a nature_n in_o itself_o be_v presage_v of_o evil_n 5._o constant_o cyprian_n be_v so_o much_o delight_v with_o the_o read_n of_o tertullian_n that_o he_o read_v something_o in_o he_o every_o day_n and_o call_v he_o his_o master_n cleric_n dam_fw-la magistrum_fw-la let_v god_n command_n the_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o our_o own_o benefit_n quicken_v we_o to_o a_o frequent_a read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n mr_n bifield_n have_v a_o calendar_n show_v what_o number_n of_o chapter_n be_v to_o be_v read_v every_o day_n that_o so_o the_o whole_a bible_n may_v be_v read_v over_o in_o the_o year_n the_o number_n of_o chapter_n while_o you_o be_v read_v the_o old_a testament_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n three_o a_o day_n and_o when_o you_o come_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v but_o two_o 314._o sometime_o where_o the_o matter_n be_v historical_a or_o typical_a or_o the_o chapter_n short_a he_o have_v set_v down_o a_o great_a number_n the_o martyr_n will_v sit_v up_o all_o night_n in_o read_v and_o hear_v after_o we_o have_v read_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n we_o must_v 1._o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o it_o and_o pray_v he_o to_o imprint_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o it_o in_o our_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v not_o fall_v out_o 2._o we_o must_v meditate_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n understand_v and_o so_o fix_v it_o in_o our_o mind_n one_o define_v meditation_n thus_o it_o be_v a_o action_n of_o the_o soul_n call_v thing_n to_o mind_n or_o remembrance_n and_o discourse_v of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v retain_v affect_v and_o possess_v 2._o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v every_o man_n preach_v to_o himself_o and_o be_v a_o set_v one_o self_n serious_o to_o consider_v in_o his_o mind_n and_o apply_v to_o his_o own_o soul_n some_o necessary_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n till_o the_o mind_n be_v inform_v and_o the_o heart_n affect_v as_o the_o nature_n thereof_o require_v and_o be_v the_o wholsome_a and_o useful_a of_o all_o exercise_n of_o piety_n this_o be_v to_o ingraff_n the_o word_n into_o one_o soul_n to_o give_v the_o seed_n much_o earth_n this_o be_v to_o bind_v it_o to_o the_o table_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o hide_v it_o in_o the_o furrow_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v to_o digest_v it_o and_o make_v it_o our_o own_o 3._o we_o voetius_fw-la must_v apply_v to_o our_o own_o use_n whatsoever_o thing_n we_o read_v and_o understand_v the_o precept_n and_o example_n of_o the_o law_n to_o instruct_v our_o life_n the_o promise_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n it_o serve_v for_o thankfulness_n 1._o that_o now_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n the_o world_n be_v consectary_n a_o long_a time_n without_o it_o it_o be_v the_o more_o wicked_a because_o they_o have_v no_o canon_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v not_o like_a to_o err_v by_o tradition_n as_o former_a age_n have_v do_v 2._o that_o fox_n we_o have_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o our_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o martyr_n will_v have_v give_v a_o load_n of_o hay_n for_o a_o few_o chapter_n of_o st_n james_n or_o paul_n in_o english_a 3._o that_o we_o have_v so_o great_a help_n for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o many_o excellent_a expositor_n salmeron_n compare_v mollerus_a on_o the_o psalm_n with_o augustine_n as_o the_o late_a thought_n be_v usual_o the_o more_o advise_v so_o the_o late_a interpreter_n be_v general_o the_o quick_a sight_v all_o those_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v which_o contemn_v or_o unreverent_o handle_v the_o scripture_n consectary_n 1._o atheist_n psalm_n who_o impious_o oppose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o all_o profane_a wretch_n who_o live_v loose_o and_o wicked_o their_o doom_n be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n julian_n the_o apostate_n when_o christian_n crave_v help_v against_o all_o their_o injury_n will_v ask_v with_o mock_n and_o scoff_v why_o they_o do_v complain_v when_o the_o galilean_a their_o master_n bid_v they_o do_v good_a for_o evil_n if_o any_o one_o will_v take_v away_o their_o coat_n that_o
rule_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o testimony_n in_o the_o new_a they_o confirm_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o old_a it_o direct_v in_o every_o case_n 2._o to_o all_o person_n this_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o minister_n yea_o a_o council_n a_o church_n wise_a to_o salvation_n to_o reform_v a_o young_a man_n who_o lust_n aâe_v unbridled_a psal._n 119._o 9_o to_o order_n a_o king_n deut._n 31._o 17._o 29_o 30._o object_n faith_n be_v before_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n answ._n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v twofold_a 1._o reveal_v that_o precede_v faith_n 2._o write_a that_o do_v not_o though_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n yet_o first_o it_o do_v not_o exclude_v other_o ministerial_a help_n as_o prayer_n preach_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o tongue_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v mean_n to_o use_v the_o rule_n and_o subordinate_a to_o it_o we_o need_v no_o more_o rule_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o absurd_a question_n of_o the_o papist_n let_v a_o man_n be_v lock_v up_o in_o a_o study_n with_o a_o bible_n what_o good_a will_v he_o get_v by_o it_o if_o he_o can_v read_v 2._o there_o must_v be_v reason_n and_o judgement_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o apply_v it_o judge_n what_o i_o say_v say_v paul_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 15._o the_o scripture_n shall_v rule_v our_o heart_n thought_n and_o inward_a cogitation_n our_o word_n and_o action_n we_o shall_v pray_v hear_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o it_o buy_v sell_v clothe_v ourselves_o and_o carry_v ourselves_o towards_o all_o as_o that_o bid_v we_o 2_o sam._n 22._o 23._o the_o people_n of_o god_n write_v after_o this_o copy_n follow_v this_o rule_n psal._n 119._o 5_o 59_o 111._o because_o they_o desire_v in_o all_o which_o they_o do_v to_o please_v god_n now_o god_n be_v please_v when_o his_o own_o will_n be_v do_v and_o to_o glorify_v he_o in_o their_o life_n and_o therefore_o they_o frame_v themselves_o according_a to_o his_o statute_n we_o can_v better_o express_v a_o high_a esteem_n of_o god_n and_o his_o excellency_n then_o by_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n every_o one_o esteem_v that_o person_n most_o excellent_a to_o who_o he_o give_v up_o himself_o most_o to_o be_v rule_v and_o order_v the_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o it_o be_v always_o necessary_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o reveal_v it_o be_v necessary_a since_o the_o time_n that_o it_o please_v god_n after_o that_o manner_n to_o deliver_v his_o word_n and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o be_v not_o then_o absolute_o and_o simple_o necessary_a that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o uâ_n in_o writing_n but_o only_o conditional_o and_o upon_o supposition_n god_n for_o a_o long_a time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 2400_o year_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n do_v instruct_v his_o church_n with_o a_o immediate_a live_a voice_n and_o have_v he_o please_v still_o to_o go_v on_o in_o that_o way_n there_o have_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o scripture_n now_o more_o than_o in_o that_o age_n there_o be_v a_o continual_a presence_n of_o god_n with_o they_o but_o now_o there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a absence_n in_o that_o way_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v write_v 1._o for_o the_o brevity_n of_o man_n life_n see_v the_o 5_o &_o the_o 11_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n the_o patriarch_n be_v long_o live_v before_o and_o after_o the_o flood_n to_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n they_o live_v some_o century_n of_o year_n therefore_o afterward_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n can_v not_o fit_o be_v preserve_v without_o writing_n by_o writing_n we_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n which_o from_o writing_n receive_v his_o denomination_n in_o be_v call_v scripture_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o write_v man_n 2._o that_o the_o church_n may_v have_v a_o certain_a and_o true_a rule_n and_o canon_n whereby_o it_o may_v judge_v of_o all_o question_n doubt_n and_o controversy_n of_o religion_n luke_n 1._o 4._o every_o man_n opinion_n else_o will_v have_v be_v a_o bible_n and_o every_o man_n lust_n a_o law_n 3._o that_o the_o faith_n of_o man_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o come_v may_v the_o better_o be_v confirm_v when_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o write_v before_o their_o eye_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o mâssias_n and_o see_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v foretell_v of_o he_o verify_v in_o the_o event_n 4._o that_o the_o purity_n of_o god_n worship_n may_v be_v preserve_v from_o corruption_n and_o the_o truth_n propagate_v among_o all_o nation_n 5._o to_o take_v off_o excuse_n from_o man_n that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v rom._n 10._o 18._o civil_a law_n be_v write_v and_o publish_v that_o offender_n may_v be_v inexcusable_a the_o penman_n have_v a_o command_n from_o god_n 1._o a_o public_a and_o outward_a command_n as_o jeremie_n 30._o 2._o and_o 36._o 2._o moses_n exod._n 17._o 14._o and_o 34._o 17._o and_o john_n be_v command_v twelve_o time_n in_o the_o revelation_n to_o write_v rev._n 1._o 11._o and_o 2._o 1._o 8._o 12_o 18._o and_o 3._o ch._n 1._o 7._o and_o 14._o and_o 14._o 13._o and_o 19_o v_o 9_o &_o 21._o 5._o 2._o a_o inward_a command_n by_o private_a inspiration_n and_o instinct_n 2_o pet_n 1._o 21._o 5._o the_o scripture_n be_v pure_a and_o holy_a it_o command_v all_o good_a and_o forbid_v reprove_v and_o condemn_v all_o sin_n and_o spartan_n filthiness_n it_o restrain_v not_o only_o from_o evil_a word_n and_o action_n but_o thought_n glance_n those_o be_v frequent_a adjunct_n of_o the_o word_n of_o âod_a holy_a pure_a and_o clean_o psal._n 12._o 6._o and_o 18._o 31._o and_o 119._o 40._o prov._n 30._o 5._o it_o be_v pure_a in_o its_o narration_n it_o speak_v pure_o of_o thing_n evil_a and_o unclean_a it_o be_v term_v holy_a discernaâtur_fw-la rom._n 1._o 2._o and_o 2_o tim._n 3._o 15._o 1._o from_o its_o efficient_a principal_a cause_n god_n who_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n holiness_n itself_o isa._n 6._o 3._o dan._n 9_o 24_o he_o be_v the_o author_n and_o inditer_n of_o it_o luke_n 1._o 67._o 2._o in_o regard_n of_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n the_o penman_n of_o it_o be_v holy_a man_n 2_o pet_n 1._o 21._o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 3._o from_o its_o matter_n the_o holy_a will_n of_o god_n act_v 20._o 27._o the_o scripture_n contain_v holy_a and_o divine_a mystery_n holy_a precept_n of_o life_n holy_a promise_n psal._n 105._o 42._o holy_a history_n 4._o from_o its_o end_n or_o effect_n the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o read_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o scripture_n sanctify_v we_o john_n 17._o 17._o it_o sanctify_v likewise_o all_o the_o creature_n to_o our_o use_n so_o as_o we_o may_v use_v they_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 5._o from_o the_o purity_n revenge_n of_o it_o the_o scripture_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o glass_n james_n 1._o 23._o to_o fire_n jer._n 23._o 29._o to_o light_n psal._n 119._o 105._o the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v because_o god_n himself_o be_v pure_a most_o pure_a psal._n 92._o ult_n hab._n 1._o 13._o it_o be_v pure_a 1._o subjective_o in_o itself_o there_o be_v no_o mixture_n of_o falsehood_n or_o error_n no_o corruption_n or_o unsoundness_n at_o all_o in_o it_o psal._n 12._o 6._o prov._n 8._o 6_o 7_o 8._o 2._o effective_o so_o as_o to_o make_v other_o pure_a john_n 15_o 3._o it_o beget_v grace_n james_n 1._o 18._o 1_o pet._n 1._o 23._o and_o preserve_v and_o increase_v it_o act_n 20._o 32._o ephes._n 4._o 11_o 12._o the_o assertory_n part_n be_v pure_a what_o it_o affirm_v to_o be_v be_v and_o what_o it_o deny_v to_o be_v be_v not_o psal._n 19_o 7._o and_o 93._o 5._o james_n 1._o 18._o 2._o what_o it_o promise_v shall_v be_v perform_v and_o what_o it_o threaten_v shall_v be_v execute_v numb_a 23._o 19_o 1_o sam._n â_o 30._o zach_n 1._o 6._o 3_o what_o it_o command_v be_v good_a and_o what_o it_o forbid_v be_v evil_n deut._n 4._o 8._o psal._n 119._o 108._o and_o 19_o 8_o 9_o rom._n 7._o 12._o in_o other_o book_n some_o truth_n be_v teach_v some_o good_a commmend_v some_o kind_n or_o concordance_n part_n of_o happiness_n promise_v but_o in_o the_o inspire_a oracle_n of_o god_n all_o truth_n be_v teach_v all_o goodness_n command_v all_o happiness_n promise_v nay_o we_o may_v invert_v the_o word_n with_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la and_o say_v quicquid_fw-la ibi_fw-la docetur_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la quicquid_fw-la prâcipitur_fw-la bonitas_fw-la quicquid_fw-la promitâitur_fw-la felicitas_fw-la all_o that_o be_v there_o teach_v be_v truth_n all_o that_o be_v there_o command_v be_v goodness_n all_o that_o be_v
there_o promise_v be_v happiness_n it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n that_o all_o the_o particular_n which_o the_o canticle_n contain_v be_v take_v from_o marriage_n 11._o be_v handle_v so_o sincere_o that_o no_o blemish_n or_o spot_n can_v be_v find_v therein_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v preach_v read_v and_o hear_v with_o holy_a scriture_n affection_n and_o shall_v be_v reverent_o mention_v the_o jew_n in_o their_o synagogue_n will_v not_o touch_v the_o bible_n with_o unwashed_a hand_n they_o kiss_v it_o as_o often_o as_o they_o open_v and_o shut_v it_o they_o sit_v not_o on_o that_o seat_n where_o it_o be_v lay_v and_o if_o it_o fall_v on_o the_o ground_n they_o fast_o for_o a_o whole_a day_n the_o turk_n write_v upon_o the_o outside_n of_o his_o alcorar_n let_v no_o man_n touch_v this_o book_n but_o he_o that_o be_v pure_a i_o will_v none_o may_v meddle_v with_o we_o alcoran_n signify_v but_o the_o scripture_n you_o need_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o word_n but_o such_o as_o indeed_o be_v what_o other_o man_n do_v but_o think_v themselves_o 6._o the_o scripture_n be_v perfect_a 119._o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v consider_v two_o way_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o the_o book_n in_o which_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n be_v write_v 32._o all_o which_o as_o many_o as_o be_v useful_a to_o our_o salvation_n have_v be_v keep_v inviolable_a in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o out_o of_o they_o one_o most_o perfect_a and_o absolute_a canon_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n be_v make_v and_o this_o may_v be_v call_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o form_n viz._n of_o the_o sense_n or_o meaning_n of_o these_o canonical_a book_n or_o of_o divine_a truth_n comprehend_v in_o they_o which_o book_n contain_v most_o full_o and_o perfect_o the_o whole_a truâh_n necessary_a and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o sole_a adequate_a total_a and_o perfect_a measure_n and_o rule_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o it_o in_o a_o twofold_a respect_n 1._o absolute_o in_o itself_o and_o that_o in_o a_o threefold_a consideration_n 1._o of_o the_o principle_n for_o every_o principle_n whether_o of_o a_o thing_n or_o of_o knowledge_n aught_o to_o be_v hilary_n perfect_a since_o demonstration_n and_o true_a conclusion_n be_v not_o deduce_v from_o that_o which_o be_v imperfect_a therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o first_o only_o immediate_a principle_n of_o all_o true_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v most_o perfect_a 2._o of_o the_o subject_n for_o it_o have_v all_o essential_a part_n matter_n and_o form_n and_o integral_a law_n and_o gospel_n and_o be_v whole_o perfect_a both_o 1._o absolute_o because_o for_o the_o substance_n it_o either_o express_o or_o analogical_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n which_o be_v communicable_a and_o profitable_a for_o we_o to_o know_v which_o may_v be_v prove_v also_o by_o induction_n that_o all_o necessary_a opinion_n of_o faith_n or_o precept_n of_o life_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o relative_o because_o as_o it_o have_v a_o perfection_n of_o the_o whole_a so_o of_o the_o part_n in_o the_o quarto_fw-la whole_a that_o perfection_n be_v call_v essential_a this_o quantitative_a for_o all_o the_o book_n be_v sufficient_a with_o a_o essential_a perfection_n although_o integral_o they_o have_v not_o a_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o only_o their_o own_o yet_o so_o that_o at_o distinct_a time_n every_o part_n suffice_v for_o their_o time_n but_o all_o the_o part_n in_o the_o whole_a be_v but_o sufficient_a for_o we_o 3._o in_o its_o effect_n and_o operation_n it_o make_v man_n perfect_a 2_o tim._n 3._o 16_o 17._o rom._n 15._o 4._o john_n 2._o ult_n &_o 5._o 39_o 2._o as_o oppose_v to_o unwritten_a tradition_n all_o which_o it_o exclude_v by_o its_o sufficiency_n but_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v by_o tradition_n general_o a_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o word_n and_o write_v but_o special_o all_o doctrine_n not_o write_v by_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n whether_o dogmatical_a historical_a or_o ceremonial_a for_o a_o perfect_a reason_n of_o the_o primary_n opinion_n belong_v to_o faith_n and_o manner_n be_v deliver_v in_o scripture_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v out_o of_o beside_o or_o against_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o bind_v the_o conscience_n 2._o historical_a the_o say_n and_o deed_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v perfect_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o many_o as_o suffice_v we_o for_o our_o salvation_n john_n 20._o 30_o 31._o those_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v man_n write_n 3._o ceremonial_a or_o secondary_a opinion_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a rite_n and_o custom_n be_v for_o essential_o substantial_o and_o fundamental_o general_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o accidental_n accessary_n and_o circumstantial_o be_v free_a and_o mutable_a if_o tradition_n agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v confirm_v by_o it_o if_o they_o oppose_v it_o they_o be_v disprove_v by_o it_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o first_o infinite_a and_o unlimited_a that_o be_v a_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o god_n every_o thing_n which_o be_v from_o another_o as_o the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v thereby_o limit_v both_o for_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n thereof_o second_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v such_o a_o perfection_n as_o contain_v all_o and_o singular_a such_o thing_n as_o at_o any_o time_n have_v be_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n reveal_v to_o holy_a man_n and_o by_o they_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o they_o be_v for_o all_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o so_o many_o word_n as_o they_o use_v in_o the_o speak_n of_o they_o for_o of_o twelve_o apostle_n seven_o write_v salvation_n nothing_o which_o yet_o preach_v and_o do_v many_o thing_n neither_o be_v all_o the_o deed_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n write_v for_o that_o be_v contradict_v john_n 20._o 30_o 31._o and_o 21._o 25._o but_o we_o mean_v only_o a_o relative_n perfection_n which_o for_o some_o certain_a end_n sake_n agree_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o a_o instrument_n according_a to_o which_o it_o perfect_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n three_o the_o several_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v indeed_o perfect_a for_o their_o own_o particular_a end_n purpose_n and_o use_n for_o which_o they_o be_v intend_v of_o the_o lord_n but_o yet_o not_o any_o one_o book_n be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o common_a end_n the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v complete_a in_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o one_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o another_o do_v whole_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n one_o clear_o deliver_v what_o be_v intricate_a in_o another_o paul_n speak_v much_o of_o justification_n and_o predestination_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n nothing_o of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o resurrection_n four_o since_o god_n do_v reveal_v his_o will_n in_o write_v those_o write_n which_o by_o divine_a hand_n and_o providence_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o church_n be_v so_o sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n in_o that_o age_n that_o it_o need_v not_o tradition_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o humane_a wight_n to_o add_v thereto_o or_o take_v therefrom_o but_o when_o god_n do_v reveal_v more_o unto_o it_o the_o former_a only_a be_v not_o then_o sufficient_a without_o the_o latter_a five_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v sufficient_o contain_v and_o deliver_v all_o doctrine_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o eternal_a salvation_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o most_o of_o these_o it_o deliver_v to_o we_o express_o and_o in_o so_o many_o word_n and_o 29._o the_o rest_n by_o good_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n and_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v not_o in_o those_o word_n express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o both_o clear_o teach_v in_o scripture_n and_o by_o evident_a proof_n may_v thence_o be_v deduce_v that_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v deduce_v thence_o acts._n 2_o 27._o some_o papist_n hold_v that_o we_o must_v not_o use_v the_o principle_n of_o reason_n or_o consequence_n in_o divinity_n and_o require_v that_o what_o we_o prove_v be_v express_v in_o so_o many_o word_n in_o scripture_n these_o be_v oppose_v by_o vedelius_fw-la in_o
we_o be_v not_o hereafter_o to_o expect_v or_o look_v for_o any_o full_a or_o more_o clear_a revelation_n of_o divine_a mystery_n then_o that_o which_o be_v then_o deliver_v 4._o christ_n be_v call_v a_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o the_o new_a covenant_n heb._n 9_o 15._o because_o all_o thing_n be_v establish_v by_o he_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o for_o that_o which_o be_v old_a decay_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o vanish_v but_o that_o which_o be_v new_a abide_v heb._n 8._o 13._o 5._o it_o please_v the_o lord_n in_o great_a wisdom_n to_o reveal_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o church_n that_o she_o may_v not_o despair_v but_o obscure_o at_o the_o first_o that_o she_o may_v earnest_o long_o for_o the_o come_n of_o that_o messiah_n who_o be_v to_o make_v know_v what_o he_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v of_o the_o father_n which_o dispensation_n be_v needful_a that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v not_o be_v contemn_v as_o haply_o it_o will_v have_v be_v if_o god_n have_v full_o reveal_v and_o make_v know_v his_o bounty_n unto_o man_n before_o he_o have_v see_v his_o misery_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n teach_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o before_o in_o some_o sort_n contain_v in_o the_o write_n 45_o of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n out_o of_o who_o he_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o be_v in_o they_o more_o obscure_o enigmatical_o and_o brief_o he_o explain_v more_o excellent_o full_o and_o clear_o the_o apostle_n prove_v their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n act._n 17._o 11._o and_o 26._o 22._o luke_n 24._o 27._o rom._n 1._o 2._o act._n 28._o 23._o six_o all_o thing_n necessary_a in_o that_o manner_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v be_v teach_v 79._o and_o inspire_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o new_a inspiration_n after_o their_o time_n nor_o be_v we_o to_o expect_v further_o hereafter_o which_o we_o prove_v 1._o by_o place_n of_o scripture_n joh._n 14._o 26._o he_o that_o teach_v all_o thing_n omit_v nothing_o christ_n say_v all_o thing_n to_o his_o apostle_n as_o appear_v john_n 15._o 15._o and_o 17._o 8._o john_n 16._o 13._o 2._o by_o reason_n draw_v from_o thence_o 1._o the_o plentiful_a pour_v forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o glorify_v of_o christ_n he_o be_v glorify_v it_o be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v delay_v christ_n be_v exalt_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n obtain_v the_o spirit_n promise_v and_o that_o be_v not_o according_a to_o measure_v and_o pour_v the_o same_o in_o such_o abundance_n as_o it_o can_v be_v pour_v forth_o and_o receive_v by_o man_n so_o that_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v foretold_v by_o joel_n 2._o 28._o act_n 2._o 33._o john_n 3._o 34_o 35._o act_n 2._o 16_o 17._o 2._o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v teach_v and_o declare_v that_o all_o divine_a truth_n shall_v full_o and_o at_o once_o be_v manifest_v by_o the_o messiah_n who_o be_v the_o only_a prophet_n high-priest_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n there_o be_v no_o other_o revelation_n promise_v none_o other_o needful_a beside_o that_o which_o be_v make_v by_o he_o isa._n 11._o 9_o act._n 3._o 23_o 24._o joel_n 2._o 23._o vide_fw-la mercerum_fw-la in_o loc_n therefore_o the_o last_o inspiration_n be_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o none_o other_o to_o be_v expect_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v suffice_v to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o do_v send_v the_o father_n to_o expect_v somewhat_o more_o perfect_a 1_o pet._n 1._o 10._o but_o to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v add_v we_o be_v not_o send_v to_o wait_v for_o any_o clear_a vision_n 3._o so_o long_o as_o any_o truth_n needful_a to_o be_v know_v be_v unrevealed_a or_o not_o plain_o teach_v the_o lord_n do_v stir_v up_o some_o prophet_n or_o other_o to_o teach_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o lord_n surcease_n to_o speak_v since_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o same_o in_o writing_n be_v unto_o we_o a_o manifest_a token_n that_o the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n be_v now_o bring_v to_o light_n and_o that_o no_o new_a revelation_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v our_o seven_o proposition_n be_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v able_a to_o propound_v and_o teach_v by_o lively_a voice_n that_o doctrine_n which_o pertain_v to_o perfection_n john_n 1._o 18._o and_o 11._o 11_o 32._o john_n 8._o 26_o and_o the_o apostle_n perfect_o teach_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n act_v 20._o 27._o gal._n 1._o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n do_v summary_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_o to_o salvation_n act._n 5._o 31._o and_o 11._o 11._o but_o this_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n preach_v act._n 13._o 38_o 39_o luke_n 24._o 47._o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_a milk_n for_o babe_n but_o strong_a meat_n for_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 1_o 2._o heb._n 5._o 14._o and_o 6._o 1_o 2._o therefore_o it_o contain_v not_o only_a matter_n of_o preparation_n but_o of_o perfection_n our_o eight_o proposition_n be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o that_o heavenly_a doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v by_o they_o commit_v to_o writing_n the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o a_o commandment_n and_o guide_v their_o hand_n therein_o that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v so_o that_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o write_v by_o they_o be_v one_o in_o substance_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o matter_n which_o be_v the_o will_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o inward_a form_n viz._n the_o divine_a truth_n immediate_o inspire_v though_o different_a in_o the_o external_a form_n and_o manner_n of_o delivery_n our_o nine_o proposition_n be_v that_o nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v of_o christian_a over_o and_o above_o that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v not_o clear_o anâ_n evident_o contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n our_o last_o proposition_n be_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v perfect_o contain_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n long_o since_o divine_o inspire_v writteâ_n and_o publish_v and_o now_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n so_o that_o no_o new_a reveltion_n or_o tradition_n beside_o instructionis_fw-la those_o inspire_v publish_v and_o comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v three_o opinion_n 1._o of_o the_o papist_n who_o altogether_o deny_v it_o 2._o of_o the_o socinian_o which_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o if_o it_o be_v âââ_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la they_o reject_v it_o 3._o of_o the_o orthodox_n who_o say_v it_o contain_v all_o thing_n express_o or_o by_o consequence_n crocius_n in_o his_o antiweigelius_n cap._n 1._o quaest._n 8._o show_n that_o private_a revelation_n dream_n conference_n with_o angel_n be_v not_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o expect_v in_o matter_n ââ_o faith_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v now_o complete_a the_o weigelian_o talk_v of_o ââ_o seculum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la as_o god_n the_o father_n have_v his_o time_n the_o time_n of_o the_o lââ_n christ_n his_o time_n the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o say_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v âââ_o his_o time_n when_o there_o shall_v be_v high_a dispensation_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v wise_a than_o the_o apostle_n see_v mat._n 24._o 14._o and_o 28._o 20._o 1_o cor._n 11._o 26._o see_v mr_n gillesp._n miscel._n c._n 10._o some_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v but_o for_o the_o train_n up_o of_o christian_n during_o their_o âânority_n as_o grammar_n rule_v for_o boy_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o acquaint_v the_o soul_n ââ_o the_o high_a discovery_n of_o god_n and_o truth_n and_o most_o corrupt_o they_o serve_v themselves_o with_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 11._o this_o glass_n say_v they_o be_v âââ_o scripture_n through_o which_o we_o see_v something_o of_o god_n indeed_o whilst_o we_o be_v ââââdren_n in_o understanding_n but_o very_o obscure_o and_o break_o and_o therefore_o say_v theâââ_n if_o you_o will_v discern_v of_o god_n clear_o and_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v you_o must_v break_v the_o glass_n and_o look_v quite_o beyond_o scripture_n
place_n part_v whereof_o consist_v in_o the_o story_n part_n in_o the_o allegory_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a sense_n be_v contain_v in_o they_o both_o so_o for_o the_o second_o example_n of_o the_o tropological_a there_o be_v not_o a_o twofold_a sense_n of_o that_o place_n but_o one_o general_a sense_n that_o as_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o ox_n be_v not_o to_o be_v muzzle_v so_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v provide_v for_o likewise_o of_o the_o anagogical_a kind_n it_o be_v not_o one_o sense_n to_o understand_v the_o rest_n of_o canaan_n another_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o there_o be_v one_o whole_a sense_n that_o as_o they_o for_o their_o idolatry_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n so_o we_o shall_v take_v heed_n least_o by_o our_o disobedience_n we_o lose_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o we_o conclude_v that_o those_o be_v not_o divers_a sense_n but_o one_o sense_n diverse_o apply_v the_o literal_a sense_n be_v the_o only_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n because_o out_o of_o that_o sense_n only_o may_v 4._o a_o argument_n strong_o be_v frame_v wherefore_o see_v allegory_n and_o trope_n do_v not_o conclude_v they_o be_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n and_o allegory_n devise_v beside_o the_o sense_n prove_v not_o though_o they_o may_v illustrate_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o be_v always_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o very_a word_n but_o we_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a concern_v any_o mystical_a sense_n unless_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o teach_v we_o as_o for_o example_n it_o be_v write_v hos._n 11._o 1._o out_o of_o egypt_n have_v i_o call_v my_o son_n and_o exod._n 12._o 46._o you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o first_o place_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n the_o late_a of_o the_o paschal_n lamb._n who_o dare_v have_v apply_v those_o thing_n to_o christ_n unless_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v first_o do_v it_o and_o declare_v his_o mind_n and_o meaning_n to_o we_o viz._n that_o son_n in_o the_o first_o place_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n but_o christ_n also_o and_o by_o bone_n in_o the_o late_a place_n not_o only_o the_o bone_n of_o that_o lamb_n but_o of_o christ_n also_o be_v understand_v second_o to_o who_o the_o chief_a authority_n to_o expound_v scripture_n be_v commit_v it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v expound_v as_o the_o church_n expound_v it_o and_o according_a to_o the_o common_a and_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n if_o the_o father_n agree_v not_o the_o matter_n be_v refer_v to_o a_o general_a council_n if_o there_o it_o be_v not_o determine_v we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n we_o say_v also_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o gift_n of_o interpret_n reside_v only_o in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o certain_a man_n or_o be_v tie_v to_o a_o certain_a place_n or_o succession_n of_o man_n the_o ministry_n of_o judgement_n downam_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n 1_o cor._n 2_o 15._o and_o 10._o 15._o 1_o joh._n 4._o 1._o act._n 15._o 16._o 2_o cor._n 14._o 29_o 31_o 32._o but_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o judgement_n he_o have_v reserve_v to_o himself_o the_o holy_a scripture_n know_v not_o the_o ancient_a father_n acknowledge_v not_o as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n there_o need_v not_o any_o such_o stand_a judge_n in_o the_o church_n these_o three_o thing_n mr_n down_n prove_v in_o his_o not_o consent_n of_o father_n but_o scripture_n the_o ground_n of_o faith_n p._n 261._o to_o 266._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o sentence_n or_o definitive_a decree_n we_o acknowledge_v no_o public_a judge_n except_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n he_o that_o make_v the_o law_n shall_v interpret_v the_o same_o 1_o cor._n 1._o 12._o 1_o joh._n 2._o 27._o argument_n bring_v by_o the_o papist_n for_o their_o opinion_n object_n 1._o they_o object_v that_o place_n exod._n 18._o 13_o 26._o chamier_n answ._n moses_n be_v a_o prophet_n endue_v with_o singular_a wisdom_n adorn_v by_o god_n with_o extraordinary_a gift_n send_v immediate_o by_o he_o and_o commend_v by_o divine_a testimony_n to_o the_o people_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o so_o he_o have_v chief_a authority_n from_o god_n over_o all_o the_o israelite_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o so_o over_o all_o christian_n moses_n his_o authority_n be_v extraordinary_a no_o man_n succeed_v in_o his_o place_n joshua_n be_v a_o captain_n only_o or_o judge_n in_o civil_a thing_n aaron_n only_o a_o priest_n to_o administer_v in_o thing_n sacred_a but_o moses_n exercise_v both_o function_n object_n 2._o they_o urge_v that_o place_n deut._n 17._o 9_o answ._n here_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o the_o judge_n be_v join_v together_o as_o vers_n 12._o if_o it_o will_v follow_v hence_o that_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n the_o emperor_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o well_o in_o civil_a 2._o the_o pope_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o same_o place_n among_o christian_n that_o the_o high-priest_n do_v among_o the_o jew_n for_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a have_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n subject_a to_o he_o but_o the_o pope_n be_v one_o among_o all_o have_v colleague_n many_o bishop_n as_o at_o first_o or_o a_o few_o patriarch_n as_o after_o object_n 3._o eccl._n 12._o 11._o if_o the_o chief_a pastor_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v such_o authority_n much_o more_o the_o chief_a priest_n in_o the_o new_a answ._n this_o one_o pastor_n loc_n signify_v neither_o the_o highpriest_n in_o the_o old_a law_n nor_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o new_a but_o jesus_n christ_n the_o high_a shepherd_n for_o our_o soul_n object_n matth._n 6._o 19_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o expound_v scripture_n answ._n first_o by_o the_o key_n here_o be_v mean_v commission_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n not_o authority_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v to_o the_o believer_n and_o shut_v to_o the_o unbeliever_n second_o that_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o peter_n only_o but_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n also_o mat._n 28._o 18_o 19_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a judgement_n 1._o of_o discretion_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 15._o 2._o of_o authority_n as_o the_o parliament_n judge_v capital_a crime_n if_o the_o papist_n understand_v the_o word_n judge_n to_o signify_v discern_v as_o when_o we_o judge_v of_o meat_n by_o the_o taste_n every_o faithful_a person_n ought_v to_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o grace_n to_o judge_v to_o discern_v and_o to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o by_o judge_v they_o understand_v to_o pronounce_v decree_n definitive_a and_o infallible_a judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n thereby_o to_o bind_v other_o man_n conscience_n there_o be_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v that_o power_n see_v moulins_n buckler_n of_o faith_n we_o have_v a_o more_o compendious_a way_n to_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v too_o long_o when_o we_o doubt_v of_o any_o place_n to_o stay_v till_o we_o have_v the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o expect_v a_o general_a council_n or_o to_o go_v up_o to_o rome_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v among_o we_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n open_v our_o heart_n do_v teach_v we_o how_o to_o understand_v they_o and_o yet_o we_o say_v not_o as_o the_o papist_n falsây_v charge_v we_o that_o we_o allow_v every_o private_a man_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n refuse_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n 45._o panoruitan_n say_v 10._o the_o opinion_n of_o one_o godly_a man_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o pope_n if_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o beâter_a authority_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 20._o no_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n stapleton_n say_v juterpretation_n be_v private_a either_o ratione_fw-la personae_fw-la when_o the_o man_n be_v prviate_v or_o ratione_fw-la medii_fw-la when_o it_o be_v not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o context_n and_o circumstance_n or_o ratione_fw-la finis_fw-la when_o it_o be_v for_o a_o false_a end_n now_o private_a interpretation_n in_o regard_n of_o
the_o person_n if_o it_o be_v public_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o mean_n be_v not_o forbid_v for_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o man_n with_o scripture_n toti_n resistere_fw-la mundo_fw-la say_v the_o gloss_n of_o the_o canon-law_n the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o the_o prophet_n be_v no_o interpreter_n or_o messenger_n of_o their_o own_o mind_n but_o go_n the_o catholic_n hold_v say_v chamier_n mean_v still_o by_o that_o title_n the_o protestant_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o private_a labour_n and_o industry_n viz._n of_o augustine_n jerom_n chrysostom_n but_o not_o in_o a_o private_a sense_n that_o be_v in_o a_o sense_n arise_v from_o the_o brain_n of_o the_o interpreter_n it_o be_v true_a say_v cartwright_n against_o the_o rhemist_n that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v expound_v of_o every_o private_a spirit_n nor_o which_o be_v more_o of_o any_o private_a spirit_n nor_o yet_o of_o all_o private_a spirit_n together_o but_o only_o of_o those_o which_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n viz._n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o be_v here_o oppose_v unto_o private_a interpretation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v fetch_v from_o ecclesiastical_a either_o father_n or_o counsel_n which_o speak_v not_o by_o inspiration_n but_o from_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o what_o he_o mean_v he_o declare_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o he_o show_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o say_n namely_o that_o it_o must_v be_v interpret_v as_o it_o be_v write_v and_o by_o as_o high_a authority_n see_v therefore_o it_o be_v first_o speak_v by_o holy_a man_n which_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o must_v be_v interpret_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n the_o interpretation_n therefore_o that_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v not_o private_a although_o it_o be_v avow_v by_o one_o man_n only_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o interpretation_n which_o be_v not_o bring_v from_o thence_o although_o it_o have_v the_o allowance_n of_o whole_a general_a counsel_n be_v but_o private_a this_o be_v a_o principal_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v call_v no_o man_n father_n or_o master_n in_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n we_o shall_v 5._o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o no_o man_n nor_o of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o earth_n but_o only_o upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o god_n our_o reason_n by_o which_o we_o prove_v that_o the_o chief_a judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n be_v to_o be_v give_v not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3._o 1._o that_o which_o only_o have_v power_n to_o beget_v faith_n that_o only_o have_v the_o chief_a authority_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o of_o determine_v all_o controversy_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n but_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v this_o force_n rom._n 10._o 17._o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o can_v infuse_v save_v faith_n into_o our_o heart_n which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o schoolman_n infusa_fw-la fides_n the_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v from_o the_o church_n be_v acquire_v and_o suffice_v not_o to_o a_o certain_a persuasion_n 2._o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v interpret_v but_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o they_o be_v write_v 11._o that_o spirit_n be_v find_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o scripture_n whosoever_o have_v promise_n from_o god_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n may_v interprett_v it_o but_o so_o have_v all_o the_o faithful_a 3._o christ_n himself_o make_v the_o scripture_n a_o judge_n john_n 12._o 48._o and_o still_o appeal_v to_o it_o 4._o although_o the_o father_n be_v man_n endue_v of_o god_n with_o excellent_a gift_n and_o bring_v no_o small_a light_n to_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o learned_a man_n in_o our_o day_n may_v give_v a_o right_a sense_n of_o sundry_a place_n thereof_o which_o the_o father_n see_v not_o yea_o against_o the_o which_o perhaps_o they_o consent_v have_v any_o man_n live_v read_v all_o the_o father_n nay_o have_v all_o the_o man_n live_v read_v they_o nay_o can_v they_o show_v they_o can_v they_o get_v they_o i_o have_v almost_o say_v can_v they_o name_v 6._o they_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o those_o word_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la almost_o 6._o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n at_o least_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o and_o the_o best_a expound_v it_o of_o peter_n faith_n yet_o the_o papist_n understand_v it_o non_fw-fr de_fw-fr fide_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la persona_fw-la petri._n here_o they_o disagree_v themselves_o from_o the_o father_n john_n 10._o 16._o by_o the_o title_n of_o one_o shepherd_n augustine_n chrysostome_n jerome_n cyril_n theodoret_n theophylact_fw-mi euthimius_n rupertus_n cyprian_n and_o other_o father_n agree_v that_o christ_n be_v theredesign_v but_o stapleton_n say_v the_o pope_n be_v there_o mean_v in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o law_n they_o go_v clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o hart._n father_n for_o they_o divide_v the_o commandment_n as_o we_o do_v but_o the_o papist_n make_v the_o two_o first_o one_o and_o the_o ten_o two_o 2._o they_o have_v no_o father_n to_o countenance_v they_o in_o this_o but_o augnstine_n revet_z de_fw-fr authoritate_fw-la patrum_fw-la c._n 5_o 6_o 7._o there_o be_v no_o write_n of_o the_o father_n for_o a_o time_n many_o of_o they_o write_v 400_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o some_o 500_o and_o 600_o year_n after_o christ_n what_o rule_n have_v they_o before_o that_o time_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n the_o father_n be_v give_v too_o much_o to_o allegorise_v cajetane_v therefore_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n say_v that_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o tie_v by_o god_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n therefore_o he_o admonish_v his_o reader_n not_o to_o take_v it_o ill_o if_o he_o sometime_o dissent_v from_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o father_n 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n act_n 17._o 11._o if_o paul_n doctrine_n much_o more_o may_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n church_n counsel_n be_v examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n 5._o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o gift_n free_o give_v by_o god_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n rom._n 12._o 6._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 10._o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o man_n but_o common_a to_o the_o faithful_a 6._o the_o faithful_a be_v command_v diligent_o to_o try_v and_o examine_v every_o doctrine_n 1_o thess._n 5._o 21._o 1_o john_n 4._o 1._o which_o can_v be_v altogether_o do_v without_o interpretation_n ãâã_d what_o mean_n must_v be_v use_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o hear_v be_v to_o direct_v the_o church_n to_o all_o save_a truth_n the_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o attain_n of_o that_o end_n by_o the_o minister_n be_v diligent_a study_n and_o humble_a prayer_n by_o the_o people_n attentive_a read_n hear_v prayer_n and_o meditate_v first_o the_o teacher_n must_v pray_v earnest_o to_o god_n for_o his_o spirit_n to_o inlighen_fw-mi they_o mat._n 7._o 7_o 8_o 9_o rom._n 15._o the_o scripture_n be_v understand_v by_o that_o spirit_n that_o dictate_v they_o second_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n must_v diligent_o and_o painful_o study_v the_o scripture_n give_v themselves_o to_o read_v compare_v place_n with_o place_n 23._o john_n 5._o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v a_o metaphor_n take_v from_o such_o as_o search_v for_o gold_n and_o silver_n oar_n in_o the_o earth_n who_o will_v search_v and_o sift_v and_o break_v every_o clod_n to_o find_v out_o the_o gold_n solomon_n use_v the_o same_o metaphor_n prov._n 2._o 4._o and_o to_o this_o diligence_n in_o search_v do_v the_o apostle_n exhort_v timothy_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 13._o this_o diligence_n of_o often_o express_v in_o scripture_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o phrase_n of_o meditate_v in_o the_o word_n josh._n 1._o 8._o psal._n 1._o 2._o three_o they_o must_v labour_v for_o a_o competent_a knowledge_n in_o the_o original_a tongue_n the_o hebrew_n and_o 9_o greek_a in_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v that_o so_o they_o may_v consult_v with_o the_o hebrew_n text_n in_o the_o old_a and_o the_o greek_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o see_v with_o their_o own_o not_o another_o eye_n as_o gen._n 3._o 15._o the_o papist_n read_v it_o corrupt_o she_o shall_v break_v here_o the_o original_n soon_o determine_v the_o
pope_n approve_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n observe_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n be_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n follow_v the_o determination_n of_o counsel_n what_o the_o pope_n confirm_v so_o that_o the_o pope_n must_v interpret_v all_o scripture_n but_o divers_a reason_n may_v be_v allege_v to_o show_v that_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 1._o because_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v frequent_o and_o gross_o err_v in_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o rom._n 8._o 8._o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n that_o be_v those_o that_o be_v marry_v say_v siricius_n the_o pope_n innocent_a so_o expound_v those_o word_n john_n 6._o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o that_o he_o thence_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n without_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o infant_n pope_n boniface_n interpret_v luke_n 22._o 38._o of_o the_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a sword_n deliver_v to_o the_o pope_n 2._o because_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v differ_v among_o themselves_o in_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n as_o matth._n 16._o 18._o some_o pope_n say_v right_o that_o by_o the_o rock_n christ_n or_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n give_v by_o peter_n concern_v christ_n be_v mean_v other_o interpret_v it_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n other_o expound_v it_o to_o be_v the_o roman_a seat_n or_o chair_n 3._o because_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o err_v but_o be_v gross_a and_o wicked_a heretic_n liberius_n the_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 350_o be_v a_o arian_n and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o unjust_a condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o afterward_o as_o a_o obstinate_a heretic_n 7._o be_v depose_v honorius_n the_o first_o be_v a_o monothelite_n he_o hold_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o will_n and_o so_o but_o one_o nature_n and_o for_o this_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o three_o general_a counsel_n some_o pope_n be_v atheist_n as_o leo_n the_o ten_o who_o call_v the_o gospel_n fabulam_fw-la de_fw-fr christâ_n one_o call_v the_o pope_n that_o great_a heteroclite_n in_o religion_n another_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o cardinal_n who_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o priest_n who_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o papist_n who_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o christian_n that_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o father_n be_v no_o good_a rule_n for_o interpret_n scripture_n see_v jaâââus_n laurentius_n his_o singular_a tractate_n entitle_v reverentia_fw-la eccles._n rom._n erga_fw-la s._n pat._n veteres_fw-la subdola_fw-la artic._n 2._o &_o proposit._n 9_o in_o his_o auctarium_fw-la he_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_n do_v more_o esteem_v the_o father_n than_o the_o papist_n and_o jesuit_n for_o counsel_n gregory_n the_o pope_n equalize_v the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n to_o the_o four_o gospel_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o authority_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o article_n define_v in_o they_o he_o say_v not_o they_o can_v as_o little_o err_v but_o they_o do_v as_o little_o err_v in_o their_o decision_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v as_o true_a as_o gospel_n because_o the_o determination_n in_o those_o first_o general_n counsel_n against_o heretic_n be_v evident_o deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n dr_n featley_n stricturae_n in_o lyndomastigem_fw-la concern_v the_o 7_o sac._n for_o if_o these_o four_o general_a counsel_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o four_o gospel_n the_o pope_n authority_n as_o papist_n say_v be_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n it_o follow_v that_o his_o authority_n be_v great_a than_o the_o evangelist_n than_o which_o what_o can_v be_v more_o blasphemous_o speak_v we_o say_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v from_o general_a counsel_n first_o because_o even_o universal_a counsel_n have_v err_v the_o chalcedonian_a council_n panormitanus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o four_o so_o much_o magnify_v by_o pope_n gregory_n in_o rash_o prefer_v the_o constantinopolitan_a church_n before_o that_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n those_o that_o condemn_v christ_n be_v then_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n matth._n 26._o 65._o john_n 11._o 47._o see_v act._n 4._o 18._o second_o general_a counsel_n have_v be_v opposite_a one_o to_o another_o that_o of_o constance_n to_o the_o other_o of_o basil_n whereof_o one_o set_v down_o that_o counsel_n can_v err_v and_o so_o also_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o a_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o affirm_v the_o quite_o contrary_a three_o there_o be_v no_o general_a counsel_n after_o the_o apostle_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n till_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a when_o yet_o the_o church_n have_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n four_o the_o general_a counsel_n interpret_v scripture_n by_o scripture_n as_o athanasius_n and_o ambrose_n teach_v concern_v the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a five_o because_o they_o can_v be_v so_o easy_o celebrate_v to_o declare_v any_o doubtful_a sense_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v expound_v but_o few_o place_n of_o scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a the_o pope_n will_v assemble_v they_o to_o expound_v the_o rest_n the_o papist_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o not_o by_o scripture_n only_o but_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n be_v all_o one_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n so_o their_o interpretation_n it_o not_o by_o man_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n like_o wise_a let_v counsel_n father_n altingius_fw-la church_n give_v their_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n its_o private_a if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o spirit_n let_v a_o private_a man_n give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o private_a because_o its_o divine_a the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o private_a in_o 2_o pet._n 1._o 20._o be_v not_o oppose_v to_o public_a but_o to_o divine_a and_o the_o word_n be_v to_o be_v read_v no_o scripture_n be_v of_o a_o man_n own_o interpretation_n that_o be_v private_a contrary_a to_o divine_a the_o word_n be_v interpret_v aright_o by_o declare_v 1._o the_o order_n 2._o the_o sum_n or_o scope_n 3._o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v do_v by_o frame_v a_o rhetorical_a and_o logical_a analysis_n of_o the_o text._n in_o give_v the_o sense_n three_o rule_n be_v of_o principal_a use_n and_o necessity_n to_o be_v observe_v 1._o the_o literal_a and_o large_a sense_n of_o any_o word_n in_o scripture_n must_v not_o be_v embrace_v far_o when_o our_o cleave_v thereunto_o will_v breed_v some_o disagreement_n and_o contrariety_n between_o the_o present_a scripture_n and_o some_o other_o text_n or_o place_n else_o shall_v we_o change_v the_o scripture_n into_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n 2._o in_o case_n of_o such_o appear_a disagreement_n the_o holy_a ghost_n lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o seek_v out_o some_o distinction_n restriction_n limitation_n or_o figure_n for_o the_o reconcilement_n thereof_o and_o one_o of_o these_o will_v always_o fit_v the_o purpose_n for_o god_n word_n must_v always_o bring_v perfect_a truth_n it_o can_v fight_v against_o itself_o 3._o such_o figurative_a sense_n limitation_n restriction_n or_o distinction_n must_v be_v seek_v out_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n afford_v either_o in_o the_o present_a place_n or_o some_o other_o and_o chief_o those_o that_o seem_v to_o differ_v with_o the_o present_a text_n be_v due_o compare_v together_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n the_o second_o book_n of_o god._n chap._n i._o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n have_v handle_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v principium_fw-la cognoscendi_fw-la in_o divinity_n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o treat_v of_o god_n nuncupant_fw-la who_o be_v principium_fw-la essendi_fw-la or_o thus_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o divinity_n god_n and_o his_o work_n be_v the_o matter_n or_o part_n of_o divinity_n this_o doctrine_n be_v 1._o necessary_a 1._o because_o man_n be_v make_v for_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v right_o acknowledge_v and_o worship_n 21_o god_n love_n and_o honour_v he_o 2._o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o divine_a revelation_n john_n 5._o 39_o 3._o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n be_v a_o great_a misery_n be_v alienate_v from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o 2._o profitable_a our_o welfare_n and_o happiness_n consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n jer._n 9_o 23._o john_n 3._o 17._o 3._o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n
say_v that_o man_n may_v know_v god_n be_v and_o bounty_n by_o his_o work_n other_o urge_v rom._n 1._o 19_o &_o act._n 14._o 17._o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n of_o know_v god_n saving_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v salvation_n heb._n 2._o 3._o see_v 2_o tim._n 1._o 10._o quid_fw-la erit_fw-la mundus_fw-la sublato_fw-la verbo_fw-la quam_fw-la infernus_fw-la &_o merum_fw-la satanae_n imperium_fw-la luther_n loc_n commun_n 1._o clas_n cap._n 23._o if_o that_o be_v true_a doctrine_n than_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o christ_n or_o they_o may_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n who_o either_o know_v he_o not_o or_o believe_v not_o in_o he_o for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n can_v never_o reveal_v christ._n solus_fw-la christus_fw-la medium_n &_o speculum_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la quod_fw-la videmus_fw-la deum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la cognosâinus_fw-la ejus_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la luther_n loc_n commun_n clas_n 1._o c._n 1._o non_fw-la solum_fw-la periculosum_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la horribile_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la extra_fw-la christum_fw-la cogitare_fw-la id._n ibid._n no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o see_v john_n 17._o 3._o act_n 4._o 12._o col._n 2._o ephes._n 2._o 12._o say_v that_o the_o gentile_n be_v without_o hope_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o they_o can_v not_o conceive_v hope_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o creature_n rom._n 1._o 20._o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n viz._n his_o power_n and_o godhead_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o creature_n but_o not_o his_o mercy_n in_o pardon_v sin_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n by_o redemption_n for_o that_o power_n and_o godhead_n strike_v a_o fear_n into_o a_o man_n and_o require_v perfect_a obedience_n but_o do_v not_o promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n instruct_v the_o heathen_n by_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n but_o never_o any_o yet_o can_v instance_n in_o one_o of_o they_o and_o say_v assure_o that_o by_o use_v well_o their_o natural_n he_o come_v to_o eternal_a life_n zuinglius_fw-la say_fw-la that_o god_n do_v extraordinary_o work_v grace_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o heathen_n which_o opinion_n of_o he_o be_v much_o exagitated_a by_o the_o lutheran_n and_o he_o be_v just_o forsake_v by_o the_o orthodox_n in_o this_o point_n the_o papist_n and_o arminian_n say_v that_o god_n give_v a_o universal_a sufficient_a grace_n to_o all_o man_n even_o to_o pagan_n paul_n rom._n 1._o speak_v of_o they_o all_o sai_z they_o become_v vain_a in_o their_o imagination_n that_o be_v a_o excellent_a speech_n of_o augustine_n qui_fw-la dicit_fw-la hominem_fw-la seruari_fw-la posse_fw-la sine_fw-la christo_fw-la dubito_fw-la a_o ipse_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la seruari_fw-la possit_fw-la see_v mr_n burgess_n of_o grace_n sect._n 12._o serm._n 120._o it_o be_v a_o worthy_a work_n for_o one_o to_o collect_v the_o several_a place_n in_o scripture_n where_o the_o relation_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n be_v mention_v his_o various_a denomination_n also_o and_o representation_n be_v express_v they_o be_v all_o great_a prop_n of_o faith_n chap._n ii_o of_o christ_n i._o his_o person_n in_o christ_n we_o must_v consider_v two_o thing_n 1._o his_o 33._o person_n 2._o his_o peace_n office_n in_o his_o person_n also_o we_o must_v consider_v two_o thing_n his_o nature_n and_o the_o union_n of_o they_o his_o nature_n be_v two_o the_o godhead_n and_o the_o manhood_n the_o union_n of_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v call_v personal_n which_o be_v a_o concurrence_n of_o two_o nature_n to_o make_v one_o person_n that_o be_v a_o individual_a subsistence_n as_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o one_o man_n i_o shall_v therefore_o treat_v of_o these_o three_o thing_n the_o godhead_n of_o christ._n the_o manhood_n of_o christ._n the_o unite_n of_o these_o two_o in_o one_o person_n concern_v the_o godhead_n have_v show_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n even_o the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n i_o now_o will_v show_v how_o he_o be_v god_n and_o why_o he_o be_v to_o be_v god_n 22._o he_o be_v god_n the_o son_n the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n and_o be_v so_o call_v of_o his_o church_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o son_n take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o for_o we_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n with_o this_o faith_n be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n he_o become_v our_o saviour_n that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o son_n unto_o his_o father_n but_o consider_v how_o he_o be_v god_n not_o by_o office_n nor_o by_o favour_n nor_o by_o similitude_n nor_o in_o a_o figure_n as_o sometime_o angel_n and_o magistrate_n be_v god_n but_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v equal_a and_o coessential_a with_o his_o father_n there_o be_v one_o godhead_n common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n and_o think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n phil._n 2._o 6._o loe_o a_o equality_n to_o god_n the_o father_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o he_o be_v not_o god_n in_o any_o secondary_a or_o inferior_a manner_n but_o be_v in_o the_o very_a form_n of_o god_n equal_a to_o he_o the_o godhead_n of_o all_o the_o three_o person_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v show_v why_o he_o must_v be_v god_n there_o be_v four_o reason_n of_o it_o 1._o that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o suffer_v 2._o to_o merit_v 3._o to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o must_v be_v do_v after_o suffering_n and_o merit_v and_o 4._o for_o the_o further_a manifestation_n of_o god_n love_n to_o man_n first_o i_o say_v that_o he_o may_v be_v of_o power_n to_o suffer_v what_o be_v to_o be_v suffer_v by_o our_o redeemer_n that_o be_v the_o punishment_n due_a to_o our_o sin_n for_o our_o redeemer_n must_v no_o otherwise_o redeem_v we_o then_o by_o be_v our_o surety_n stand_v in_o our_o very_a stead_n supply_v our_o room_n and_o sustain_v in_o his_o own_o person_n that_o punishment_n which_o all_o our_o sin_n have_v deserve_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n he_o must_v be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o sin_n he_o must_v be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o our_o iniquity_n must_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o must_v bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o tree_n christ_n must_v suffer_v for_o sin_n now_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o horrible_a wrath_n of_o god_n a_o burden_n so_o heavy_a as_o no_o shoulder_n of_o any_o mere_a creature_n can_v bear_v it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o proportion_n betwixt_o the_o weakness_n of_o man_n and_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n wherefore_o he_o be_v to_o be_v god_n that_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o the_o godhead_n may_v uphold_v the_o frailty_n of_o the_o manhood_n to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v oppress_v with_o the_o weight_n and_o sink_v down_o in_o despair_n discouragement_n impatiency_n dejectedness_n or_o the_o like_a inconvenience_n which_o have_v he_o be_v drive_v unto_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o so_o shall_v have_v lose_v himself_o in_o stead_n of_o redeem_v we_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o brazen_a altar_n upon_o which_o the_o sacrifice_n must_v be_v burn_v and_o which_o be_v make_v with_o wood_n but_o cover_v with_o brass_n so_o christ_n be_v man_n but_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v cover_v with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o deity_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v consume_v wood_n will_v have_v be_v burn_v with_o fire_n brass_n will_v not_o man_n will_v have_v be_v swallow_v up_o with_o those_o suffering_n have_v not_o the_o divine_a power_n uphold_v the_o same_o second_o he_o must_v be_v god_n that_o the_o godhead_n may_v give_v worth_a value_n meritoriousnesse_n unto_o the_o suffering_n and_o obedience_n both_o which_o the_o humane_a nature_n perform_v to_o the_o end_n that_o one_o man_n may_v stand_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o god_n may_v account_v himself_o as_o much_o satisfy_v in_o his_o justice_n by_o his_o sole_a and_o short_a suffering_n as_o if_o all_o man_n have_v suffer_v everlasting_o and_o as_o much_o honour_v by_o his_o obedience_n as_o if_o all_o man_n have_v obey_v it_o be_v requisite_a that_o that_o one_o man_n shall_v be_v make_v more_o excellent_a than_o all_o man_n put_v together_o and_o so_o he_o be_v make_v by_o be_v god_n and_o man_n for_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o it_o be_v personal_o unite_v unto_o god_n and_o have_v the_o godhead_n dwell_v in_o it_o bodily_a so_o that_o the_o body_n be_v the_o body_n of_o god_n and_o more_o worth_a than_o all_o the_o
to_o god_n 1._o that_o god_n may_v manifest_v 1._o his_o hatred_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o elect_a 2._o the_o truth_n of_o his_o threaten_n in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n 3._o the_o exactness_n of_o his_o justice_n both_o in_o punish_v those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o christ_n when_o christ_n himself_o suffer_v so_o much_o from_o his_o father_n and_o in_o pardon_v his_o people_n rom._n 3._o 25_o 26._o give_v christ_n unto_o we_o but_o of_o justice_n to_o pardon_v those_o that_o be_v in_o christ._n 4._o his_o mercy_n mix_v with_o justice_n to_o all_o man_n that_o be_v save_v now_o justice_n be_v satisfy_v and_o mercy_n magnify_v that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o our_o surety_n be_v count_v as_o do_v by_o our_o own_o person_n second_o in_o reference_n to_o christ_n 1._o to_o declare_v the_o transcendency_n of_o his_o love_n rather_o than_o we_o shall_v be_v forsake_v for_o ever_o he_o will_v undergo_v for_o a_o while_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o father_n love_n mat._n 27._o 46._o in_o his_o apprehension_n 2._o to_o show_v the_o reality_n of_o his_o incarnation_n he_o have_v not_o only_o the_o excellency_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o all_o the_o common_a infirmity_n 3._o to_o show_v his_o great_a condescension_n he_o deny_v himself_o in_o all_o his_o glory_n for_o a_o time_n 4._o to_o declare_v the_o completeness_n of_o his_o satisfection_n he_o have_v all_o manner_n of_o calamity_n in_o sense_n and_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o father_n love_n the_o divine_a vision_n be_v suspend_v 5._o that_o he_o may_v by_o all_o this_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a mediator_n three_o in_o reference_n to_o satan_n that_o he_o may_v answer_v all_o his_o objection_n he_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v his_o desire_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v overthrow_v by_o it_o four_o in_o reference_n to_o his_o child_n that_o they_o may_v have_v encouragement_n to_o come_v to_o god_n by_o he_o that_o they_o may_v have_v strong_a consolation_n our_o remission_n be_v more_o honourable_a to_o be_v forgive_v on_o satisfaction_n set_v the_o person_n offend_v in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o innocency_n that_o before_o our_o happiness_n be_v more_o sure_a be_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n none_o christ_n death_n be_v not_o only_o to_o merit_v but_o also_o to_o satisfy_v for_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n merit_v proper_o respect_v the_o good_a to_o be_v obtain_v satisfaction_n the_o evil_a that_o be_v to_o be_v remove_v as_o a_o man_n merit_v a_o reward_n which_o be_v good_a but_o satisfy_v for_o that_o fault_n which_o be_v commit_v 2._o merit_v proper_o respect_v the_o good_a of_o he_o that_o merit_v or_o he_o for_o who_o he_o merit_v satisfaction_n respect_v the_o good_a of_o he_o for_o who_o the_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v three_o thing_n make_v up_o satisfaction_n 1._o ordination_n of_o the_o judge_n 2._o submission_n of_o the_o surety_n 2._o 3._o acceptation_n of_o the_o sinner_n satisfaction_n be_v nothing_o but_o that_o quo_fw-la alicui_fw-la plenè_fw-la satissit_v this_o the_o scripture_n express_v by_o redemption_n expiation_n reconciliation_n satisfactionis_fw-la vocabulum_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la negotio_fw-la scriptura_fw-la non_fw-la usurpavit_fw-la rem_fw-la tamen_fw-la ipsam_fw-la 4._o docuit_fw-la manifestissimé_fw-fr rivet_n disp._n 13._o the_o satisf_n christi_fw-la the_o word_n satisfaction_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o latin_a or_o english_a bibles_n apply_v to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o old_a but_o twice_o numb_a 35._o 31_o 32._o but_o the_o thing_n it_o itself_o intend_v by_o that_o word_n be_v every_o where_o ascribe_v to_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n there_o be_v also_o other_o word_n in_o the_o original_a language_n equivalent_a to_o that_o whereby_o we_o express_v the_o thing_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v a_o term_n borrow_v from_o the_o law_n apply_v proper_o to_o thing_n thence_o translate_v unto_o person_n and_o it_o be_v a_o full_a compensation_n of_o the_o creditor_n from_o the_o debtor_n hence_o from_o thing_n real_a it_o be_v and_o be_v translate_v to_o thing_n personal_a isa._n 53._o 12._o the_o word_n nasa_n argue_v a_o take_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n from_o we_o and_o translate_n it_o to_o himself_o and_o so_o signify_v satisfaction_n so_o do_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d use_v by_o peter_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 24._o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o mr._n owen_n of_o redemption_n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o of_o christ_n priesthood_n you_o have_v hear_v now_o you_o shall_v hear_v of_o his_o prophecy_n a_o work_n annex_v to_o priesthood_n for_o the_o same_o person_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n that_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n for_o they_o although_o some_o do_v teach_v that_o may_v not_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n these_o title_n be_v give_v to_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o office_n he_o be_v call_v dan._n 8._o 13._o onomat_n palmoni_fw-la the_o revealer_n of_o secret_n the_o doctor_n matth._n 23._o 28._o lawgiver_n jam._n 4._o 12._o counsellor_n isa._n 9_o 6._o revel_v 3._o 18._o chief_a prophet_n of_o his_o church_n act._n 3._o 22._o &_o 3._o 37._o that_o prophet_n by_o a_o excellency_n mark_v 2._o 6._o john_n 1._o 18._o &_o 15._o 15._o &_o 3._o 32._o &_o 14._o 25._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n mal._n 3._o 1._o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o profession_n heb._n 3._o 1._o a_o faithful_a witness_n apoc._n 1._o 5._o a_o witness_n isa._n 55._o 4._o the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o world_n isa._n 60._o 1._o luk._n 2._o 32._o and_o the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n heb._n 12._o 2._o he_o be_v the_o great_a prophet_n like_o unto_o moses_n yea_o far_o above_o moses_n who_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o in_o his_o church_n to_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n the_o prophet_n office_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n the_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o their_o duty_n that_o they_o may_v please_v god_n and_o attain_v his_o promise_n now_o christ_n be_v also_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n which_o teach_v the_o will_n and_o whole_a heaven_n counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v our_o salvation_n that_o prophet_n who_o moses_n do_v foretell_v and_o who_o the_o people_n expect_v for_o this_o end_n in_o that_o time_n that_o he_o live_v as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o samaritan_n woman_n show_v see_v deut._n 18._o 8._o john_n 15._o 15._o &_o 17._o 8._o the_o matter_n or_o part_n of_o this_o prophetical_a office_n be_v teach_v or_o reveal_v the_o will_n of_o god_n this_o teach_n of_o christ_n be_v double_a external_n and_o internal_a external_o he_o teach_v 1._o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o prophet_n in_o the_o time_n that_o go_v before_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n who_o he_o raise_v uâ_n for_o that_o end_n that_o they_o may_v reveal_v so_o much_o of_o his_o will_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o know_v peter_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v then_o in_o prison_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a mean_v his_o prophet_n in_o former_a time_n who_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n stir_v up_o for_o that_o end_n 2._o he_o teach_v himself_o in_o person_n when_o he_o have_v take_v our_o flesh_n upon_o he_o for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a or_o as_o some_o think_v of_o four_o year_n go_v up_o and_o down_o and_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n say_v repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o miracle_n and_o sign_n of_o all_o sort_n to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o report_n of_o they_o as_o the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o the_o four_o evangelist_n do_v plain_o show_v 3._o he_o teach_v by_o his_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n man_n which_o he_o stir_v up_o with_o extraordinary_a gift_n and_o power_n to_o preach_v every_o where_o send_v they_o out_o first_o whilst_o himself_o live_v into_o all_o the_o country_n of_o judaea_n and_o then_o after_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o move_v some_o of_o they_o to_o write_v in_o book_n and_o leave_v to_o the_o church_n use_v those_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o perfect_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o do_v sufficient_o plain_o and_o perfect_o instruct_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o each_o member_n of_o it_o to_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v never_o another_o book_n extant_a in_o the_o world_n yet_o if_o a_o man_n have_v these_o write_n for_o all_o substantial_a point_n true_o translate_v into_o a_o tongue_n understand_v by_o he_o and_o have_v
archbishop_n four_o thousand_o bishop_n and_o five_o thousand_o saint_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o jesuit_n or_o to_o the_o weak_a and_o unperfect_a type_n of_o they_o the_o franciscan_n it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n that_o they_o have_v do_v dr._n donnes_o ignatius_n his_o conclave_n a_o rich_a merchant_n in_o paris_n in_o merriment_n tell_v the_o friar_n of_o saint_n francis_n that_o they_o wear_v a_o rope_n about_o their_o body_n but_o saint_n francis_n shall_v once_o have_v be_v hang_v but_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o pope_n on_o this_o condition_n that_o all_o his_o life_n after_o he_o shall_v wear_v a_o rope_n but_o they_o in_o earnest_n get_v judgement_n against_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v hang_v for_o it_o doctor_n tailor_n romish_a furnace_n the_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v no_o where_o mention_v in_o scripture_n unless_o apoc._n 9_o 3._o locust_n issue_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n they_o by_o their_o smoky_a tradidition_n obscure_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o prove_v their_o cardinal_n a_o divine_a ordinance_n they_o urge_v that_o place_n 1_o king_n 2._o domini_fw-la erunt_fw-la cardines_fw-la terrae_fw-la see_v polyd._n virg._n de_fw-fr invent._n rerum_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 9_o pag._n 270._o they_o consist_v for_o most_o part_n of_o personage_n noble_o descend_v they_o be_v admit_v to_o kiss_v the_o pope_n mouth_n they_o only_o elect_v the_o pope_n and_o from_o they_o only_o the_o pope_n elect_v must_v be_v select_v saint_n peter_n have_v no_o cardinal_n about_o he_o a_o certain_a friar_n witty_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n at_o lion_n in_o france_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o hogonot_n so_o the_o protestant_n be_v call_v in_o france_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o there_o be_v one_o wicked_a word_n solùm_fw-la only_o at_o the_o noise_n of_o which_o the_o war_n be_v kindle_v for_o they_o only_o believe_v what_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n have_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n require_v something_o more_o to_o be_v believe_v then_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o holy_a scripture_n because_o the_o authority_n of_o of_o the_o church_n will_v have_v it_o so_o junius_n de_fw-fr eccles._n cap._n 17._o de_fw-fr eccles._n roman_n corollary_n from_o the_o church_n and_o antichrist_n first_o from_o the_o church_n christ_n great_a interest_n here_o below_o be_v the_o church_n it_o be_v his_o hephzibah_n his_o delight_n 13._o be_v in_o she_o it_o be_v as_o shewbread_n continual_o before_o he_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v his_o segullah_n his_o peculiar_a treasure_n his_o jewel_n mal._n 3._o 17._o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v but_o as_o lumber_v in_o comparison_n for_o they_o the_o world_n stand_v the_o church_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 1._o 22._o the_o great_a blessing_n be_v out_o of_o zion_n the_o interest_n of_o christ_n extend_v to_o all_o church_n where_o a_o people_n love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o sincerity_n the_o donatist_n will_v include_v the_o church_n in_o their_o part_n of_o africa_n the_o papist_n say_v they_o only_o be_v the_o church_n christ_n interest_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o any_o form_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o none_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o those_o which_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o they_o real_o holy_a and_o unite_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n about_o qualification_n of_o church-member_n therefore_o apollonius_n and_o spanhemius_fw-la have_v begin_v their_o dispute_n with_o this_o question_n some_o say_v the_o member_n of_o every_o particular_a church_n be_v oblige_v at_o their_o first_o admission_n to_o show_v to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n convince_a sign_n of_o their_o regeneration_n and_o true_a grace_n some_o urge_v that_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o description_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n rest_v not_o in_o the_o negative_a rom._n 8._o 1._o and_o that_o a_o bare_a profession_n be_v not_o enough_o or_o to_o say_v i_o know_v no_o evil_n by_o he_o or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o scandalous_a they_o urge_v 1_o thes._n 1._o 1._o and_o 2_o thes._n 1._o 1._o they_o say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o term_v holy_a from_o the_o better_a part_n but_o the_o particular_a member_n be_v commend_v for_o holiness_n 2_o thes._n 1._o 3._o phil._n 1._o 7._o we_o be_v strict_a say_v they_o in_o take_v a_o wife_n or_o servant_n inquire_v after_o they_o and_o be_v not_o 62._o satisfy_v that_o we_o hear_v no_o ill_a so_o a_o judgement_n of_o severity_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o admit_v church-member_n and_o because_o we_o may_v be_v deceive_v therein_o the_o more_o care_n be_v to_o be_v use_v other_o say_v if_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o give_v up_o their_o name_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v enough_o because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o school_n there_o they_o be_v admit_v non_fw-la quia_fw-la docti_fw-la but_o ut_fw-la sint_fw-la docti_fw-la not_o because_o they_o be_v learn_v but_o because_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v will_v you_o have_v church-member_n real_a saint_n cross_a to_o the_o text_n the_o floor_n and_o drag-net_n or_o such_o as_o by_o the_o exact_a scrutiny_n that_o can_v be_v make_v we_o may_v judge_v 83._o to_o be_v saint_n real_o i_o desire_v your_o text_n for_o this_o d._n ames_n say_v falsum_fw-la est_fw-la internas_fw-la virtutes_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la requiri_fw-la ut_fw-la aliquis_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la quoad_fw-la visibilem_fw-la ejus_fw-la statum_fw-la bellarm._n eneru._n tom._n 2._o l._n 2._o c._n 1._o sect._n 5._o it_o the_o apostle_n at_o the_o first_o gather_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n never_o require_v any_o more_o than_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n in_o fundamental_o and_o that_o they_o be_v willing_a for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o walk_v in_o gospel-rule_n john_n baptist_n receive_v publican_n and_o sinner_n soldier_n scribe_n pharisee_n when_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n and_o desire_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o who_o john_n preach_v see_v act._n 2._o 41_o 47._o vide_fw-la calvin_n ad_fw-la mat._n 3._o many_o a_o one_o that_o may_v have_v real_a grace_n yet_o out_o of_o bashfulness_n and_o because_o he_o have_v but_o weak_a part_n may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o evidence_n it_o to_o other_o and_o other_o who_o have_v great_a gift_n may_v carry_v it_o away_o when_o they_o be_v not_o inward_o wrought_v upon_o i_o suppose_v therefore_o those_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o church_n communion_n which_o churchway_n profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o be_v free_v from_o damnable_a error_n and_o scandalous_a conversation_n some_o conceive_v the_o gather_n of_o church_n out_o of_o church_n to_o be_v unwarrantable_a and_o think_v it_o be_v confusion_n 1_o cor._n 14._o 33._o where_o be_v there_o say_v they_o any_o warrant_n from_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n or_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o any_o such_o thing_n though_o yet_o in_o their_o time_n many_o church-member_n be_v as_o ignorant_a and_o profane_a as_o now_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o great_a privilege_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v the_o only_a good_a fellowship_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n consist_v in_o three_o thing_n casuum_fw-la first_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o grace_n what_o grace_n they_o have_v they_o have_v not_o only_o for_o their_o salvation_n but_o in_o trust_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o body_n the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v helpful_a to_o one_o another_o second_o in_o the_o use_n of_o god_n ordinance_n this_o be_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n act._n 2._o 42._o there_o be_v no_o such_o separation_n then_o three_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o mutual_a office_n of_o love_n serve_v one_o another_o in_o love_n our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o communion_n as_o all_o man_n be_v one_o in_o the_o first_o adam_n so_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v one_o in_o the_o second_o adam_n this_o union_n be_v wrought_v on_o god_n part_n outward_o by_o the_o word_n and_o inward_o by_o the_o spirit_n on_o man_n part_n outward_o by_o our_o profession_n inward_o by_o faith_n rom._n 11._o 20._o by_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v mean_v their_o common_a partake_n in_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n and_o their_o mutual_a interest_n one_o into_o another_o there_o be_v no_o such_o good_a fellowship_n in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n second_o from_o antichrist_n that_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n tend_v to_o the_o extreme_a dishonour_n of_o god_n word_n
regula_fw-la fidei_fw-la chamierus_n the_o scripture_n be_v therefore_o call_v canonical_a because_o it_o prescribe_v a_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n phil._n 3._o 16._o gal._n 6._o 16._o tertullianus_n appellat_fw-la scripturam_fw-la regulam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la augustinus_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o ait_fw-la in_o scripture_n inveniri_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la continent_n fidem_fw-la moresque_fw-la vivendi_fw-la advers._fw-la helvid_n cap._n 9_o sacra_fw-la scripturae_fw-la regula_fw-la credendi_fw-la certissima_fw-la tutissimaque_fw-la est_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l_o 1._o c._n 2._o 2._o hoc_fw-la primum_fw-la credimus_fw-la cum_fw-la credimuâ_n quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la ultra_fw-la credere_fw-la debemus_fw-la see_v mr._n anthony_n burâââ_n on_o mark_n 1._o 2_o 3._o deut._n 5._o 29._o isa._n 8._o 20._o 20._o verba_fw-la scripturae_fw-la non_fw-la sunâ_n legenda_fw-la sed_fw-la vivenda_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la saâitas_fw-la servatur_fw-la confirmando_fw-la verum_fw-la refellendo_fw-la balsam_n aquavitae_fw-la sanctimionia_fw-la fugiendo_fw-la malum_fw-la saciendo_fw-la bonum_fw-la satis_fw-la habet_fw-la scriptura_fw-la quo_fw-la veritatem_fw-la doceat_fw-la errorent_fw-la redarguat_fw-la iniquitatem_fw-la corrigat_fw-la instituat_fw-la ad_fw-la justiciam_fw-la nec_fw-la haecââtiliter_fw-la praestat_fw-la solummodo_fw-la quae_fw-la sophistarum_fw-la cavillatio_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la nempe_fw-la ut_fw-la perfectus_fw-la âit_n homo_fw-la etc._n etc._n rainoldus_n rainoldus_n deut._n 17._o 18._o isa._n 8._o 20._o luke_n 16._o 29._o act_n 24._o 14._o christian_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o that_o hereafter_o john_n 12._o 48._o 2_o thess._n 1._o 8._o 8._o judaei_n docenâ_fw-la exhoc_fw-la loco_fw-la teâeri_fw-la regem_fw-la sua_fw-la maââ_n sibi_fw-la legem_fw-la describere_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la alias_o cum_fw-la privatus_fw-la esset_fw-la descripâisset_fw-la chamierus_n regula_n fidei_fw-la est_fw-la quasi_fw-la causa_fw-la exemplaris_fw-la fidei_fw-la quam_fw-la videlicet_fw-la fides_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la sequi_fw-la &_o cui_fw-la se_fw-la conformare_fw-la debet_fw-la formale_a objectum_fw-la âidei_fw-la est_fw-la causa_fw-la objectiva_fw-la fidei_fw-la seu_fw-la est_fw-la principium_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la fotmaliter_fw-la &_o principaliter_fw-la credimus_fw-la baron_fw-fr contra_fw-la turnebul_n nos_fw-la discamus_fw-la ex_fw-la verbo_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la sapere_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la loqui_fw-la be_v ââââ_o epist._n 7._o david_n psa._n 119_o desire_n that_o all_o his_o counsel_n thought_n manner_n action_n may_v be_v direct_v according_a to_o god_n word_n the_o scripture_n contain_v 1._o a_o necessary_a doctrine_n viz._n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n mat._n 22_o 37._o john_n 13._o 16._o without_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v rom._n 7._o 7._o it_o be_v 2._o necessary_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o form_n matth._n 22._o 29._o 4._o the_o end_n john_n 20._o 31._o 31._o write_v do_v a_o large_a good_a to_o a_o great_a number_n and_o for_o a_o long_a time_n than_o speak_v psal._n 102_o 19_o vox_fw-la audita_fw-la perit_fw-la litera_fw-la scripta_fw-la manet_fw-la to_o show_v how_o much_o a_o more_o faithful_a keeper_n record_n be_v than_o report_n those_o few_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v write_v be_v preserve_v and_o believe_v those_o infinite_o more_o that_o be_v not_o write_v be_v all_o lose_v and_o vanish_v out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n man_n among_o the_o turk_n polygamy_n be_v lawful_a theft_n be_v permit_v among_o the_o spartan_n spartan_n literae_fw-la sacrae_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d scripturae_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la à _fw-la saecularihus_fw-la &_o proâanis_fw-la litâris_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la a_o quibuscunque_fw-la quae_fw-la de_fw-la sacris_fw-la rebus_fw-la agunt_fw-la discernaâtur_fw-la discernaâtur_fw-la mahomet_n say_v his_o doctrine_n come_v from_o god_n but_o the_o blasphemy_n and_o villainy_n therein_o contain_v show_v it_o come_v from_o satan_n whereas_o the_o purity_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o it_o be_v from_o above_o mahomet_n put_v in_o some_o ingredient_n of_o the_o flesh_n give_v they_o liberty_n to_o revenge_v themselves_o and_o to_o have_v as_o many_o wife_n as_o they_o will_v there_o be_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o philosopher_n little_o condemn_v of_o fornication_n and_o of_o the_o desire_n of_o revenge_n dr_n featley_n preface_n to_o newman_n concordance_n concordance_n the_o general_n view_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n notatur_fw-la verecunda_fw-la &_o casta_fw-la scripture_n locutio_fw-la ex_fw-la genere_fw-la per_fw-la synecdochen_n designantis_fw-la specialem_fw-la congressum_fw-la sic_fw-la 1_o cor._n 7._o 1._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr bonum_fw-la tangere_fw-la &_o gen._n 6._o 2._o ingredi_fw-la ad_fw-la filias_fw-la hominum_fw-la quo_fw-la major_n est_fw-la spurcity_n eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripturae_fw-la loquendi_fw-la formulis_fw-la ansam_fw-la arripiunt_fw-la sermonis_fw-la impuri_fw-la cartw._n in_o harm_n evang._n in_o matth._n 1._o 18._o quidam_fw-la hebraeorum_n linguam_fw-la hebraeam_fw-la linguam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la dici_fw-la putant_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la nulla_fw-la propria_fw-la vocabula_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la inveniantur_fw-la quibus_fw-la pudenda_fw-la utriusque_fw-la sexus_fw-la egestio_n aliaque_fw-la obsââna_fw-la significantur_fw-la paulus_n fagius_n annotat._n in_o deut._n 25._o 11._o 11._o sancta_fw-la sanctè_fw-la mr_n gregory_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o observation_n upon_o some_o passage_n of_o scriture_n scriture_n luke_n 16._o 29._o john_n 5._o 39_o psal._n 19_o and_o 119._o augustinus_n affirmat_fw-la omniaquae_fw-la continent_n fidem_fw-la &_o mores_fw-la in_fw-la illis_fw-la inveniri_fw-la quae_fw-la apertè_fw-la posita_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o scriptura_fw-la chrysostomus_n manifesta_fw-la itidem_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la scripture_n esse_fw-la perhibet_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la necessaria_fw-la tertullianus_n adorat_fw-la scripturae_fw-la plenitudinem_fw-la et_fw-la vae_fw-la denunciat_fw-la hermogeni_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la iis_fw-la quae_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la vel_fw-la detraâât_fw-la vel_fw-la adiiciat_fw-la rainoldus_n 1_o thesi._n deut._n 4._o 2._o and_o 12._o 32._o de_fw-fr scripturae_fw-la plenitudine_fw-la &_o perfectione_n quââ_n sentiat_fw-la maldonatus_fw-la vide_fw-la ad_fw-la joan._n 7._o 4._o de_fw-fr scripturae_fw-la integritate_fw-la vide_fw-la estium_fw-la ad_fw-la galat._n 3._o 10._o see_v bishop_n usher_v body_n of_o divinity_n p._n 18_o 19_o 20_o 21._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16_o 17._o john_n 15._o 15._o act_n 20._o 27._o beâe_fw-la habet_fw-la ut_fw-la iis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la scripta_fw-la contentus_fw-la siâ_n hilary_n in_o every_o age_n there_o be_v reveal_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o now_o no_o more_o than_o be_v sufficient_a the_o word_n itself_o be_v not_o now_o but_o the_o revelation_n only_o be_v more_o perfect_a the_o old_a testament_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o jew_n but_o both_o the_o new_a and_o old_a make_v but_o one_o complete_a body_n for_o the_o church_n now_o singâli_fw-la libri_fw-la sâât_fw-la sufficientes_fw-la sufficientia_fw-la pârtium_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la sunt_fw-la âââââârò_fw-la scripture_n est_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la essentiali_fw-la sufficientia_fw-la per_fw-la âi_fw-la bros_fw-la singulos_fw-la suââ_n jun._n animad_fw-la ââ_o bellarm_n conârââ_n pâtmae_fw-la câpiââ_n quarto_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o a_o perfect_a register_n for_o matter_n of_o fact_n mr_n geree_n whitakerus_n de_fw-fr script_n c._n sexto_fw-la quaest_n 6._o stapleton_n and_o serrarius_n be_v more_o wary_a than_o some_o other_o papist_n we_o be_v abuse_v say_v they_o when_o we_o be_v say_v to_o hold_v that_o the_o scriture_n be_v not_o perfect_a for_o say_v they_o a_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v imperfect_a not_o when_o it_o want_v any_o perfection_n but_o when_o it_o want_v a_o perfection_n due_a as_o a_o man_n be_v not_o imperfect_a if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o angel_n perfection_n because_o this_o be_v not_o due_a unto_o he_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o a_o perfection_n due_a to_o the_o scripture_n to_o teach_v we_o every_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n perinde_v sunt_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n coll_v guntur_fw-la atque_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la scribuntur_fw-la g._n egg_n naziaâzen_n l._n 5._o theol._n mat._n 28._o 29._o catholici_fw-la in_o perfectione_n scripturae_fw-la papistae_fw-la in_o imperfectione_n totius_fw-la causae_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la controversiarum_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la proram_fw-la &_o puppim_fw-la constituunt_fw-la chamierus_n tom._n 1._o de_fw-fr canonâ_n lib._n 8._o cap._n 1._o 1_o cor._n 10._o 1_o 2_o 3_o mat._n 8._o 11._o luk._n 19_o 9_o gal._n 3._o 7_o 8_o 29._o rom._n 4._o 15_o 16._o some_o papist_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v not_o imperfect_a because_o they_o send_v we_o to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v he_o perfect_a rule_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v perfect_a implicitè_fw-fr though_o not_o explicitè_fw-fr but_o so_o i_o may_v say_v every_o rustic_a be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n because_o he_o can_v show_v i_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n if_o the_o scripture_n send_v to_o the_o church_n to_o learn_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o this_o send_n she_o confess_v her_o imperfection_n see_v moulins_n buckler_n of_o faith_n pag._n 45._o joh._n 1._o 18._o &_o
leigh_n body_n of_o divinity_n a_o systeme_n or_o body_n of_o divinity_n consist_v of_o ten_o book_n wherein_o the_o fundamental_o and_o main_a ground_n of_o religion_n be_v open_v the_o contrary_a error_n refute_v most_o of_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o the_o papist_n arminian_n and_o socinian_o discuss_v and_o handle_v several_a scripture_n explain_v and_o vindicate_v from_o corrupt_a gloss_n a_o work_v seasonable_a for_o these_o time_n wherein_o so_o many_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v question_v and_o so_o many_o gross_a error_n daily_o publish_v by_o edward_n leigh_n esquire_n and_o master_n of_o art_n of_o magdalen-hall_n in_o oxford_n quisquis_fw-la bone_fw-la verusque_fw-la christianus_n est_fw-la domini_fw-la svi_fw-la esse_fw-la intelligat_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la invenerit_fw-la veritatem_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n l._n 2._o london_n print_v by_o a._n m._n for_o william_n lee_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o turks-head_n in_o fleetstreet_n over_o against_o fetter-lane_n m._n dc_o liv._o to_o all_o the_o orthodox_n and_o godly_a magistrate_n minister_n and_o people_z of_o england_n who_o be_v lover_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o socinian_o make_v sport_n in_o their_o book_n with_o the_o protestant_a author_n because_o they_o call_v themselves_o the_o orthodox_n and_o say_v we_o use_v that_o as_o a_o spell_n think_v thereby_o to_o charm_v all_o dissentiate_n and_o some_o that_o plead_v for_o universal_a redemption_n apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o such_o corrupt_a doctrine_n seem_v to_o slight_v those_o mormoluke_n of_o arminianism_n pelagianism_n socinianism_n yet_o there_o be_v those_o who_o be_v orthodox_n who_o judgement_n be_v sound_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o there_o be_v also_o without_o question_n many_o in_o these_o day_n who_o be_v hetrodox_n and_o unsound_a in_o the_o faith_n we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 16._o 2._o the_o concurrent_a judgement_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v slight_v that_o say_v of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n cap._n 5._o in_o commonit_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la be_v worthy_a our_o serious_a consideration_n mos_fw-la iste_fw-la semper_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la viguit_fw-la ut_fw-la quò_fw-la cuique_fw-la foret_fw-la religiosior_fw-la eo_fw-la promptius_fw-la novellis_fw-la adinventionibus_fw-la contrairet_fw-la that_o custom_n say_v he_o have_v still_o flourish_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o more_o religious_a any_o one_o be_v the_o more_o ready_o he_o will_v oppose_v new_a invention_n truth_n be_v precious_a and_o shall_v be_v maintain_v error_n be_v dangerous_a veritas_fw-la and_o shall_v be_v oppose_v buy_v the_o truth_n and_o sell_v it_o not_o say_v solomon_n jerusalem_n be_v call_v a_o city_n of_o truth_n zech._n 8._o 3._o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n john_n 18._o 27._o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n complain_v that_o none_o be_v valiant_a 3._o for_o the_o truth_n contend_v earnest_o for_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v once_o 2._o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n but_o for_o the_o truth_n say_v paul_n it_o be_v make_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n sheep_n john_n 10._o 4_o 5._o to_o take_v heed_n of_o error_n and_o false_a teacher_n our_o magistrate_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o our_o josiah_n king_n edward_n the_o six_o and_o queen_n elizabeth_n two_o thing_n in_o king_n edward_n 1._o in_o his_o honour_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o in_o his_o oppose_v of_o error_n and_o false_a worship_n when_o he_o be_v crown_v they_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n three_o sword_n he_o answer_v there_o be_v one_o yet_o want_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v far_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o when_o he_o be_v press_v by_o bishop_n ridley_n and_o other_o to_o tolerate_v his_o sister_n mass_n in_o her_o own_o chapel_n he_o will_v not_o though_o importune_v yield_v thereunto_o say_v he_o shall_v dishonour_v god_n in_o it_o and_o be_v much_o urge_v by_o they_o he_o burst_v out_o into_o tear_n and_o they_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v more_o divinity_n in_o his_o little_a finger_n than_o they_o in_o all_o their_o body_n queen_n elizabeth_z after_o her_o coronation_n when_o the_o bible_n be_v 838._o present_v unto_o she_o at_o the_o little_a conduit_n in_o cheapside_n she_o receive_v the_o same_o with_o both_o her_o hand_n and_o kiss_v it_o lay_v it_o to_o her_o breast_n say_v that_o the_o same_o have_v ever_o be_v her_o chief_a delight_n and_o shall_v be_v the_o rule_n by_o which_o she_o mean_v to_o frame_v her_o government_n colla_fw-la fregevill_n a_o wise_a french_a writer_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o general_a cause_n of_o reformation_n observe_v two_o memorable_a thing_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n government_n 1._o that_o under_o her_o first_o reformation_n have_v free_a and_o full_a course_n throughout_o england_n 2._o that_o she_o be_v a_o favourer_n of_o the_o clergy_n she_o once_o in_o her_o progress_n visit_v the_o county_n of_o suffolk_n all_o the_o 32._o justice_n of_o peace_n in_o that_o county_n meet_v her_o majesty_n every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v his_o minister_n next_o to_o his_o body_n which_o the_o queen_n take_v special_a notice_n of_o and_o thereupon_o utter_v this_o speech_n that_o she_o have_v often_o demand_v of_o her_o privy_a council_n why_o her_o county_n of_o suffolk_n be_v better_o govern_v theu_fw-la any_o other_o county_n and_o can_v never_o understand_v the_o reason_n thereof_o but_o now_o she_o herself_o perceive_v the_o reason_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o say_v she_o where_o the_o word_n and_o the_o sword_n go_v together_o anticritica_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o magistrate_n not_o only_o to_o regard_v that_o the_o life_n of_o his_o subject_n be_v civil_a and_o honest_a but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v religious_a and_o godly_a therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o we_o may_v live_v under_o they_o a_o peaceable_a life_n not_o only_o in_o all_o honesty_n but_o also_o in_o all_o godliness_n or_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n as_o the_o word_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v signify_v therefore_o the_o king_n be_v command_v to_o take_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n and_o not_o of_o the_o second_o table_n only_o imply_v that_o he_o shall_v look_v to_o the_o execution_n as_o well_o of_o the_o first_o table_n as_o the_o second_o minister_n also_o shall_v appear_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o be_v able_a now_o if_o ever_o to_o convince_v the_o gainsayers_a tit._n 1._o 9_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n and_o for_o reproof_n 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o shall_v we_o have_v the_o pelagian_a doctrine_n of_o freewill_n and_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n plead_v for_o and_o our_o bertii_fw-la maintain_v the_o apostasy_n of_o saint_n and_o shall_v we_o have_v no_o bradwardines_n to_o write_v de_fw-fr causa_fw-la dei_fw-la nor_o augustine_n the_o bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la i_o remember_v when_o the_o worthy_a prolocutor_n of_o the_o assembly_n with_o other_o divine_n bring_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o he_o say_v they_o have_v be_v the_o long_o and_o have_v take_v the_o more_o pain_n about_o it_o that_o it_o may_v obviate_v the_o error_n of_o the_o time_n sozomen_n relate_v a_o very_a remarkable_a story_n to_o this_o purpose_n 18._o when_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_n be_v call_v against_o arius_n many_o of_o the_o wise_a heathen_n come_v thither_o to_o hear_v the_o disputation_n there_o one_o philosopher_n among_o the_o rest_n behave_v himself_o very_o insolent_o there_o and_o petulant_o deride_v the_o christian_a minister_n a_o old_a plain_a countryman_n ex_fw-la illustrium_fw-la confessorum_fw-la numero_fw-la be_v not_o able_a to_o brook_v his_o arrogancy_n desire_v to_o dispute_v with_o he_o and_o have_v a_o last_o gain_v liberty_n he_o begin_v thus_o philosophe_n audito_fw-la vnus_n est_fw-la deus_fw-la coeli_fw-la terrae_fw-la etc._n etc._n hear_v philosopher_n make_v a_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n there_o be_v one_o god_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n invisible_a and_o then_o show_v how_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n and_o converse_v here_o with_o man_n and_o die_v for_o they_o and_o shall_v after_o come_v to_o judge_v man_n for_o all_o that_o they_o have_v do_v here_o on_o earth_n and_o then_o conclude_v that_o these_o conversum_fw-la thing_n be_v so_o without_o any_o other_o curious_a search_n we_o certain_o believe_v therefore_o do_v not_o spend_v your_o pain_n in_o vain_a in_o a_o curious_a refute_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v only_o right_o understand_v by_o faith_n or_o in_o search_v how_o they_o
free_a gather_v of_o church_n i_o will_v wish_v such_o to_o weigh_v well_o what_o m._n baxter_n have_v in_o his_o christian_a concord_n pag._n 34._o to_o 4â_n for_o the_o judgement_n of_o divers_a reform_a divine_v hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n see_v vignier_n preface_n to_o that_o excellent_a book_n of_o he_o entitle_v theatre_n de_fw-fr l'antichrist_n and_o m._n prinns_n canterburian_n doom_n p._n 277_o 278_o 279._o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o i_o hear_v from_o the_o professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n out_o of_o the_o pulpit_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o since_o that_o doctrine_n prevail_v among_o we_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n that_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o lose_a hand_n i_o wonder_v then_o why_o some_o of_o our_o divine_n shall_v speak_v and_o write_v so_o wary_o that_o way_n i_o may_v add_v divers_a thing_n to_o that_o i_o speak_v there_o of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o monk_n the_o dominican_n come_v near_o we_o than_o the_o fraciscans_n friar_z francis_n be_v high_o commend_v by_o the_o papist_n for_o three_o notable_a act_n first_o for_o gather_v worm_n out_o of_o the_o way_n second_o for_o call_v all_o manner_n of_o beast_n as_o worm_n and_o ass_n his_o brethren_n three_o for_o take_v louse_n off_o beggar_n and_o put_v they_o on_o himself_o yea_o into_o his_o own_o bosom_n see_v lewis_n owen_n run_v register_n his_o unmask_n of_o all_o popish_a monk_n and_o jesuit_n and_o also_o his_o speculum_fw-la jesuiticum_fw-la in_o the_o seven_o book_n i_o speak_v of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o the_o special_a benefit_n by_o he_o adoption_n john_n 1._o 12._o justification_n act._n 13._o 38_o 39_o sanctification_n 1_o thess._n 4._o 1._o col._n 2._o 13._o rom._n 12._o 9_o to_o the_o end_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o gal._n 5._o 22_o 23_o 24._o ephes._n 6._o 14._o to_o 19_o philippian_n 4._o 4._o to_o the_o 9_o in_o the_o eight_o of_o the_o ordinance_n where_o i_o show_v the_o need_n of_o they_o for_o the_o anabaptistas_n able_a christian_n here_o and_o maintain_v the_o several_a ordinance_n for_o that_o of_o baptism_n why_o shall_v the_o privilege_n of_o infant_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v straight_a than_o it_o be_v under_o the_o law_n or_o actual_a faith_n be_v more_o require_v in_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v than_o it_o be_v in_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v circumcise_v when_o cirlumcision_n as_o well_o as_o our_o baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o admission_n into_o the_o church_n and_o a_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n rom._n 4._o 11._o in_o the_o nine_o book_n i_o speak_v of_o the_o decalogue_n where_o i_o acknowledge_v i_o have_v receive_v much_o help_n from_o a_o manuscript_n of_o m._n wheatleys_n for_o the_o four_o first_o commandment_n and_o of_o m._n ball_n for_o the_o first_o see_v m._n caudry_n second_o part_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o the_o last_o i_o treat_v of_o glorification_n mat._n 25._o 46._o 2_o cor._n 5._o 10._o see_v a_o excellent_a sermon_n of_o master_n thomas_n goodwin_n of_o this_o argument_n style_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n on_o rom._n 8._o 18._o i_o have_v not_o only_o go_v over_o the_o several_a head_n of_o positive_a divinity_n but_o i_o have_v likewise_o handle_v many_o if_o not_o most_o of_o the_o chief_a controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n the_o arminian_n socinian_o and_o also_o discuss_v several_a thing_n about_o church-government_n to_o make_v it_o more_o full_a and_o general_o useful_a to_o settle_v man_n in_o the_o main_a truth_n it_o be_v report_v of_o david_n paraeus_n that_o his_o labour_n be_v bestow_v in_o polish_n the_o body_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n collect_v by_o zachary_n ursine_n and_o that_o he_o desire_v 536._o not_o to_o die_v till_o he_o have_v finish_v that_o task_n but_o when_o he_o have_v conclude_v it_o he_o joyful_o utter_v these_o word_n now_o lord_n suffer_v thy_o servant_n to_o depart_v in_o peace_n because_o i_o have_v do_v that_o which_o i_o desire_v i_o have_v cause_n to_o bless_v god_n as_o for_o that_o good_a esteem_n which_o my_o other_o labour_n have_v general_o find_v among_o both_o learned_a and_o pious_a christian_n so_o for_o enable_v i_o to_o accomplish_v this_o great_a work_n some_o may_v perhaps_o blame_v i_o for_o glean_v some_o notion_n from_o such_o as_o i_o hear_v as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o author_n i_o read_v to_o that_o i_o may_v say_v habes_fw-la confitentem_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la reum_fw-la i_o know_v no_o such_o guilt_n in_o it_o if_o i_o do_v make_v use_n sometime_o of_o some_o special_a observation_n i_o hear_v from_o the_o pulpit_n though_o i_o hear_v often_o the_o same_o thing_n from_o several_a person_n some_o hold_n that_o a_o man_n sermon_n be_v no_o long_o his_o own_o when_o he_o have_v preach_v it_o and_o i_o think_v the_o ear_n as_o well_o as_o the_o eye_n be_v sense_n of_o discipline_n beside_o many_o divine_n and_o idle_a some_o rabbi_n though_o i_o have_v but_o harsh_a language_n from_o one_o divine_a have_v acknowledge_v themselves_o behold_v to_o i_o for_o my_o labour_n therefore_o i_o hope_v none_o will_v grudge_v if_o i_o do_v likewise_o benefit_v myself_o and_o also_o other_o by_o my_o collection_n in_o that_o kind_n i_o pray_v god_n to_o guide_v we_o all_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o preserve_v we_o from_o apostasy_n in_o these_o decline_a day_n thy_o hearty_a well-willer_n edward_n leigh_n imprimatur_fw-la june_n 15_o 1653_o edmund_z calamy_n prolegomena_n hebrew_n vi_o i._n the_o apostle_n chide_v the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n gospel_n for_o their_o ignorance_n and_o uncapablenesse_n of_o divine_a mystery_n from_o vers_fw-la 11._o to_o the_o end_n he_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v dull_a of_o hear_v and_o that_o their_o ignorance_n be_v affect_v they_o may_v for_o their_o time_n and_o mean_n have_v be_v teacher_n and_o yet_o now_o they_o must_v be_v teach_v and_o which_o be_v strange_a the_o very_a principle_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n here_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n he_o earnest_o exhort_v they_o to_o increase_v both_o in_o knowledge_n and_o obedience_n leave_v the_o apostle_n allude_v to_o man_n run_v a_o race_n they_o leave_v one_o place_n and_o go_v on_o forward_o we_o must_v leave_v the_o principle_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v not_o stick_v there_o but_o pass_v on_o to_o a_o great_a perfection_n the_o apostle_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o school_n of_o the_o jew_n where_o he_o be_v train_v up_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o scholar_n 1._o puny_n or_o petty_n 2._o proficient_n perfectist_n six_o principle_n be_v name_v as_o so_o many_o head_n and_o common-place_n of_o the_o ancient_a catechism_n not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o other_o necessary_a principle_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o 1._o two_o main_a duty_n that_o be_v 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n from_o it_o dead_a work_n that_o every_o man_n be_v dead_a in_o sin_n by_o nature_n and_o therefore_o have_v need_n to_o repent_v 2._o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o god_n in_o his_o nature_n as_o manifest_v in_o the_o word_n and_o reveal_v in_o christ._n 2._o two_o mean_n 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n by_o which_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n he_o mean_v both_o the_o sacrament_n and_o also_o the_o inward_a baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o outward_a baptism_n of_o john_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o minister_n though_o some_o spanhem_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o set_a time_n of_o baptism_n 2._o the_o imposition_n or_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n that_o be_v by_o a_o trope_n or_o borrow_a speech_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o which_o hand_n be_v lay_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n as_o à _fw-fr laâide_n expound_v it_o so_o cartwright_n in_o his_o harmony_n see_v m._n gillespy_v miscel._n cap._n 3._o pag._n 47_o 48._o and_o m._n cartw._n rejoynd_v p._n 278._o 3._o two_o benefit_n resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o the_o same_o numerical_a grot._n body_n shall_v arise_v again_o that_o it_o die_v not_o with_o the_o body_n and_o eternal_a judgement_n so_o call_v metonymical_o because_o in_o that_o judgement_n sentence_n shall_v be_v give_v concern_v their_o eternal_a state_n either_o in_o weal_n or_o woe_n vide_fw-la grot._n cat._n in_o matth._n 26._o 45._o not_o lay_v again_o the_o foundation_n three_o thing_n be_v require_v in_o a_o foundation_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n in_o the_o build_n 2._o that_o it_o bear_v up_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o build_n 3._o that_o it_o be_v firm_a and_o immovable_a simple_o and_o absolute_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o time_n person_n and_o thing_n christ_n 11._o only_o be_v the_o foundation_n upon_o which_o the_o spiritual_a build_n of_o the_o church_n be_v
raise_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v name_v here_o a_o foundation_n because_o they_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o be_v know_v before_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v know_v and_o because_o upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n all_o other_o part_n of_o heavenly_a knowledge_n do_v depend_v they_o must_v be_v so_o firm_o lay_v and_o receive_v at_o the_o first_o as_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v question_v more_o not_o that_o minister_n may_v not_o preach_v again_o of_o principle_n those_o that_o deny_v fundamental_o must_v of_o necessity_n destroy_v religion_n perfection_n be_v build_v on_o the_o old_a foundation_n in_o no_o age_n since_o the_o gospel_n dawn_v in_o the_o world_n be_v all_o fundamental_o in_o religion_n deny_v till_o now_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n write_v ephes._n 2._o 20._o revel_v 21._o 14._o in_o three_o respect_n 1._o because_o they_o be_v the_o first_o which_o found_v church_n and_o convert_v unbeliever_n to_o the_o faith_n 2._o because_o their_o doctrine_n which_o they_o receive_v immediate_o from_o god_n by_o most_o undoubted_a revelation_n without_o mixture_n of_o error_n or_o danger_n of_o be_v deceive_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o all_o after-comer_n 3._o because_o they_o be_v head_n guide_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n the_o proposition_n or_o observation_n which_o arise_v from_o these_o word_n thus_o open_v may_v be_v this_o the_o principle_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n must_v be_v well_o lay_v observation_n or_o thus_o catechise_v and_o instruct_v of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o necessary_a duty_n to_o be_v use_v the_o apostle_n illustrate_v this_o by_o a_o comparison_n first_o from_o school_n second_o from_o building_n the_o foundation_n must_v be_v first_o lay_v the_o excellent_a definition_n of_o catechise_v which_o the_o apostle_n here_o give_v yield_v we_o two_o good_a proof_n of_o its_o necessity_n 1._o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n by_o some_o render_v not_o inchoat_fw-la unfit_o for_o the_o sense_n which_o give_v beginning_n in_o christ._n 2._o it_o be_v a_o foundation_n which_o bear_v up_o all_o the_o building_n without_o this_o preach_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n which_o though_o it_o make_v the_o least_o show_n yet_o it_o angliae_fw-la be_v of_o great_a use_n it_o establish_v man_n and_o keep_v they_o free_a from_o waver_v 3._o this_o course_n be_v most_o agreeable_a 1._o to_o art_n all_o art_n proceed_v from_o principle_n physician_n have_v their_o principle_n lawyer_n their_o maxim_n philosopher_n their_o chief_a sentence_n 2._o to_o nature_n which_o first_o form_v the_o vital_a part_n than_o the_o more_o remote_a 3._o it_o be_v suitable_a to_o reason_n principle_n be_v 1._o easy_a in_o themselves_o 2._o facilitate_v other_o matter_n 3._o be_v the_o most_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o bear_v up_o all_o the_o rest_n 4._o be_v of_o continual_a and_o constant_a use_n principia_fw-la sunt_fw-la minima_fw-la quantitate_fw-la maxima_fw-la virtute_fw-la 4._o god_n order_n and_o practice_n have_v be_v still_o to_o lay_v principle_n thing_n may_v easy_o pass_v from_o one_o to_o another_o at_o first_o they_o live_v so_o long_o cain_n and_o abel_n sacrifice_a be_v a_o evidence_n of_o catechise_n before_o the_o flood_n there_o be_v no_o word_n write_v then_o therefore_o it_o be_v like_o their_o father_n teach_v they_o it_o be_v practise_v by_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o 19_o the_o fruit_n of_o which_o observe_v in_o his_o son_n gen._n 24._o 63._o and_o servant_n gen._n 12._o 26._o god_n himself_o write_v a_o catechism_n for_o the_o jew_n describe_v a_o short_a compendium_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o two_o authentic_a table_n of_o the_o law_n hannah_n deliver_v samuel_n to_o eli_n 25_o his_o instructor_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v wean_v jehoiada_n teach_v the_o young_a king_n jihoash_n david_n and_o bathsheba_n practise_v it_o 2_o chron._n 28._o 8_o 9_o psal._n 34._o 11._o prov._n 4._o 4._o &_o 31._o 1._o and_o solomon_n himself_o seem_v to_o give_v that_o precept_n out_o of_o the_o most_o experience_n of_o his_o own_o most_o excellent_a education_n teach_v a_o child_n the_o trade_n of_o his_o way_n and_o when_o he_o be_v old_a he_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o though_o himself_o scarce_o do_v so_o and_o eccles._n 12._o 23._o he_o draw_v all_o which_o he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o whole_a book_n to_o two_o head_n fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n catechise_v 17._o be_v also_o practise_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n luke_n 2._o 4._o act_n 22._o 3._o heb._n 6._o 1_o 2_o 3._o christ_n allow_v of_o hosanna_n sing_v by_o child_n he_o begin_v with_o regeneration_n to_o nicodemus_n and_o he_o draw_v the_o whole_a law_n into_o two_o head_n matth._n 22._o 37._o john_n and_o christ_n preach_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o apostle_n epistle_n after_o they_o theophilus_n be_v catechize_v luke_n 1._o 4._o apollo_n act._n 18._o 23._o timothy_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o the_o apostle_n paul_n commend_v to_o timothy_n custody_n a_o pattern_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n which_o he_o 15._o call_v principle_n a_o form_n of_o doctrine_n rom._n 6._o 17._o and_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n rom._n 12._o 6._o that_o be_v certain_a plain_a rule_n unto_o which_o all_o other_o must_v hold_v proportion_n the_o magdeburgenses_n observe_v from_o these_o place_n and_o that_o heb._n 6._o that_o there_o be_v catechismus_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traâitus_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n draw_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o short_a head_n for_o the_o instruct_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n this_o duty_n principal_o belong_v to_o minister_n their_o office_n be_v set_v down_o under_o the_o name_n of_o catechise_n let_v he_o which_o be_v catechize_v make_v he_o that_o catechize_v partaker_n gal._n 6._o 6._o minister_n must_v plant_v and_o beget_v as_o well_o as_o increase_v and_o build_v up_o feed_v the_o lamb_n as_o well_o as_o the_o sheep_n they_o be_v compare_v to_o nurse_n wise_a steward_n skilful_a builder_n it_o must_v be_v perform_v by_o householder_n also_o ephes._n 6._o 4._o god_n charge_v parent_n to_o perform_v this_o duty_n deut._n 6._o 6_o 7._o rehearse_v they_o continual_o whet_v they_o upon_o proverb_n thy_o child_n often_o go_v over_o the_o same_o thing_n as_o a_o knife_n do_v the_o whetstone_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o the_o nurture_n and_o information_n of_o the_o lord_n child_n be_v to_o be_v teach_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o passeover_n exod._n 12._o 16._o master_n of_o family_n also_o must_v instruct_v their_o servant_n which_o be_v ungrounded_a as_o child_n christ_n instruct_v his_o apostle_n he_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o pray_v he_o be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n and_o they_o his_o family_n as_o appear_v because_o he_o do_v eat_v the_o passeover_n together_o with_o they_o and_o the_o law_n appoint_v that_o every_o family_n shall_v celebrate_v that_o feast_n together_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n specifi_v not_o this_o point_n in_o the_o master_n duty_n be_v because_o if_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o father_n it_o shall_v be_v needless_a see_v it_o be_v do_v to_o the_o master_n hand_n but_o if_o the_o father_n neglect_v it_o sure_o the_o master_n which_o succeed_v in_o the_o father_n room_n and_o have_v his_o authority_n must_v see_v it_o do_v for_o as_o a_o father_n in_o israel_n be_v bind_v to_o see_v his_o own_o son_n circumcise_v 13_o so_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o see_v his_o servant_n circumcise_v and_o if_o to_o circumcise_v he_o sure_o he_o must_v as_o well_o make_v he_o as_o his_o child_n to_o know_v what_o circumcision_n mean_v and_o what_o christ_n do_v as_o a_o master_n of_o a_o family_n that_o instructio_fw-la must_v every_o master_n of_o family_n do_v see_v we_o must_v be_v follower_n of_o christ_n every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n therefore_o every_o one_o must_v instruct_v his_o ignorant_a servant_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o jew_n do_v use_v catechise_v cyprian_n say_v optatus_n exercise_v it_o at_o 6._o carthage_n and_o origen_n at_o alexandria_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n have_v his_o poedagogus_fw-la lactantius_n and_o calvin_n their_o institution_n athanasius_n his_o synopsis_n augustine_n his_o enchiridion_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n and_o de_fw-fr catechizandis_fw-la rudibus_fw-la catechise_v be_v institutio_fw-la viva_fw-la voce_fw-la a_o kind_n of_o familiar_a conference_n the_o hebrew_n verb_n chanach_n signify_v to_o instruct_v or_o train_v up_o even_o from_o childhood_n and_o to_o initiate_v or_o dedicate_v from_o which_o word_n holy_a henoch_n dietericus_n have_v his_o name_n import_v nurture_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o sound_v or_o
most_o unjust_a mean_n extort_v money_n from_o gojim_n that_o be_v the_o gentile_n paulus_n fagius_n in_o his_o annotat._n on_o deut._n 17._o 17._o scripture_n argument_n be_v the_o chief_a to_o convince_v a_o unbeliever_n christ_n by_o divers_a consectary_n argument_n john_n 5._o labour_n to_o convince_v the_o jew_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n promise_v 1._o john_n bare_a witness_n of_o he_o vers_n 33._o 2._o his_o work_n bare_a witness_n of_o he_o verse_n 36._o 3._o the_o father_n do_v bear_v witness_n of_o he_o vers_n 37._o 4._o he_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n vers_fw-la 39_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o will_v you_o not_o believe_v john_n my_o miracle_n my_o word_n from_o heaven_n then_o believe_v the_o write_a word_n if_o we_o believe_v not_o the_o testimomy_n of_o scripture_n nothing_o will_v convince_v we_o though_o one_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a nor_o christ_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v here_o in_o the_o flesh_n and_o shall_v preach_v unto_o we_o joh._n 5._o ult_n the_o lord_n in_o execute_v of_o his_o judgement_n common_o observe_v proportion_n 31._o and_o retaliation_n antichrist_n be_v the_o great_a opposite_a to_o god_n law_n and_o word_n he_o be_v call_v therefore_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2_o thess._n 2._o 8._o the_o lawless_a one_o he_o be_v without_o law_n above_o law_n against_o law_n he_o abuse_v scripture_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o judââ_n and_o interpret_v scripture_n therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o ruin_n 2_o thess._n 2._o 8._o god_n shall_v destroy_v he_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n id_fw-la est_fw-la verbo_fw-la svo_fw-la beza_n god_n have_v consecrate_v the_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v not_o only_o to_o save_v but_o destroy_v be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o some_o and_o it_o be_v a_o fit_a instrument_n for_o such_o a_o work_n antichrist_n strength_n be_v in_o man_n conscience_n only_o this_o will_v pierce_v thither_o heb._n 4._o 12._o god_n use_v the_o word_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n these_o way_n 1._o it_o discover_v he_o his_o doctrine_n his_o error_n 2._o it_o harden_v he_o 3._o it_o condemn_v he_o and_o pass_v sentence_n against_o he_o chap._n iii_o ii_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o divine_a âlows_n the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o book_n canonical_a of_o scripture_n be_v call_v canonical_a book_n say_v some_o from_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o word_n be_v use_v 2_o cor._n 10._o 13._o phil._n 3._o 16._o gal._n 6._o 16._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d mark_v the_o double_a emphasis_n this_o notable_a canon_n because_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o canon_n by_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v divine_o inspire_v by_o it_o and_o also_o be_v make_v a_o perfect_a canon_n or_o rule_n of_o all_o doctrine_n concern_v religion_n credendorum_fw-la &_o agendorum_fw-la of_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o do_v towards_o salvation_n but_o cameron_n think_v it_o be_v not_o term_v canonical_a because_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n for_o that_o book_n say_v he_o be_v call_v canonical_a which_o be_v put_v into_o the_o catalogue_n which_o the_o ancient_n call_v a_o canon_n of_o those_o write_n which_o be_v esteem_v divine_a becanus_n say_v they_o be_v call_v canonical_a scriptura_fw-la both_o because_o they_o contain_v a_o rule_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v in_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o because_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o divine_a book_n the_o condition_n of_o a_o canon_n be_v these_o 1._o it_o must_v contain_v truth_n or_o be_v a_o express_a form_n and_o image_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v in_o the_o divine_a mind_n 2._o it_o must_v be_v command_v sanctify_a and_o confirm_v by_o divine_a authority_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o canon_n to_o we_o in_o the_o church_n these_o book_n be_v sanctify_v either_o common_o all_o of_o both_o testament_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o church_n and_o canon_n itself_o or_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v special_o and_o singular_o confirm_v by_o word_n sign_n and_o event_n as_o the_o pentateuch_n but_o the_o prophetical_a book_n and_o hagiographa_n before_o their_o carry_v into_o babylon_n by_o extraordinary_a sign_n the_o cloud_n and_o veil_n in_o the_o temple_n 1_o king_n 8._o 10._o levit._fw-la 16._o 2._o and_o god_n answer_n by_o ephod_n urim_n and_o thummim_n exod._n 28._o 30._o after_o their_o carry_v away_o into_o babylon_n by_o singular_a testimony_n of_o event_n the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o flesh_n by_o his_o say_n and_o deed_n heb._n 1._o 2._o and_o by_o the_o powerful_a ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o sign_n virtue_n and_o miracle_n mark_v 16._o 20._o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a canon_n in_o the_o church_n divine_a ecclesiastical_a and_o bellarm._n false_a the_o divine_a canon_n be_v that_o which_o proper_o and_o by_o itself_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n immediate_o inspire_v of_o god_n into_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n this_o according_a to_o the_o divers_a time_n of_o the_o church_n be_v distinguish_v into_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 6_o 14._o this_o be_v a_o common_a division_n of_o the_o sacred_a bible_n among_o christian_n as_o in_o the_o version_n of_o tremellius_n and_o junius_n testamenti_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la biblia_fw-la sacra_fw-la and_o the_o geneva_n give_v that_o title_n to_o their_o bible_n la_fw-fr bible_n qui_fw-fr est_fw-fr toute_fw-fr la_fw-fr saint_n escriture_n du_fw-fr viâl_n &_o noveau_fw-fr testament_n augustine_n think_v they_o be_v better_o call_v vetus_n &_o novum_fw-la instrumentum_fw-la heinsius_n &_o grotius_n vetus_n &_o novum_fw-la foedus_fw-la vide_fw-la grotii_fw-la annotat._n in_o libros_fw-la evangelii_n a_o covenant_n be_v a_o agreement_n between_o two_o a_o testament_n be_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o will_n of_o one_o it_o be_v call_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o form_n convention_n and_o agreement_n between_o god_n and_o man_n a_o covenant_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o confirm_v it_o a_o testament_n for_o 1._o in_o a_o testament_n or_o last_o will_v the_o testator_n mind_n be_v declare_v so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o his_o word_n therefore_o it_o be_v call_v a_o testimony_n often_o psal._n 19_o and_o 119._o 2._o here_o be_v a_o testator_n christ_n a_o legacy_n eternal_a life_n heir_n the_o elect_a a_o write_v the_o scripture_n seal_n the_o sacrament_n 3._o because_o it_o be_v ratify_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n heb._n 9_o 16_o 17._o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o god_n to_o the_o joh._n church_n of_o the_o jew_n show_v they_o what_o to_o believe_v and_o how_o god_n will_v be_v worship_v the_o new_a testament_n contain_v the_o book_n which_o treat_v of_o salvation_n already_o exhibit_v and_o christ_n already_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v write_v original_o august_n in_o hebrew_a because_o they_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o hebrew_n rom._n 3._o 2._o except_o what_o daniel_n junius_n and_o ezra_n write_v in_o the_o chaldee_n the_o jewish_a church_n receive_v they_o from_o god_n keep_v they_o and_o deliver_v they_o to_o posterity_n many_o grave_a author_n hold_v that_o the_o hebrew_n be_v the_o first_o tongue_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o it_o may_v probable_o be_v collect_v from_o the_o name_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n it_o be_v call_v hebrew_a say_v erpenius_n not_o from_o heber_n of_o the_o posterity_n of_o shem_n as_o josephus_n jerom_n and_o other_o think_v when_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o rather_o speak_v chaldee_n then_o hebrew_a because_o abraham_n the_o patriarch_n which_o draw_v his_o original_n from_o he_o be_v a_o chaldean_a but_o it_o be_v so_o call_v say_v erpenius_n 14._o as_o all_o the_o rabbin_n origen_n and_o other_o testify_v from_o the_o hebrew_n which_o people_n arise_v from_o canaan_n it_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o holy_a tongue_n say_v the_o same_o erpenius_n because_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n speak_v it_o to_o his_o prophet_n deliver_v his_o holy_a will_n write_v in_o it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o because_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a from_o the_o opinion_n of_o great_a man_n that_o holy_a man_n shall_v use_v it_o with_o god_n hereafter_o in_o heaven_n vide_fw-la buxtorfium_fw-la de_fw-la linguae_fw-la hebraeae_fw-la origine_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la &_o sanctitate_fw-la there_o be_v many_o hebraism_n also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n many_o word_n and_o phrase_n rather_o use_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o hebrew_n then_o the_o greek_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v
apostle_n write_v in_o greek_a which_o write_v peculiar_o to_o the_o jew_n as_o iâmes_n and_o peter_n matthaeum_n hebraiâè_fw-la scripsisse_fw-la convenit_fw-la inter_fw-la antiquos_fw-la citat_fw-la irenâum_fw-la origenem_fw-la athanasium_fw-la epiphanium_fw-la chrysostomum_fw-la hieronymum_n vossius_fw-la de_fw-la genere_fw-la christi_fw-la dissertat_fw-la scripsit_fw-la hebraea_n lingua_fw-la quia_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la judaeorum_n quos_fw-la viva_fw-la voce_fw-la hactânus_fw-la docuisset_fw-la haberet_fw-la rationem_fw-la id._n ibid._n vide_fw-la grotium_fw-la in_o libros_fw-la evangel_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v write_v by_o many_o first_o for_o the_o certainty_n second_o for_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o among_o all_o the_o evangelist_n there_o be_v a_o general_a agreement_n and_o a_o sp_z ãâ¦ã_z rinse_v 8._o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o main_a scope_n and_o subject_n christ_n they_o dââââr_v in_o ãâ¦ã_z all_o argument_n and_o order_n all_o describe_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n some_o more_o large_o some_o more_o brief_o some_o more_o lofty_o some_o more_o plain_o yet_o because_o all_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n they_o all_o have_v equal_a authority_n the_o difference_n of_o evangelist_n in_o some_o small_a matter_n prove_v their_o consent_n in_o the_o great_a to_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o truth_n for_o have_v they_o conspire_v all_o together_o to_o have_v deceive_v the_o world_n they_o will_v in_o all_o thing_n have_v more_o full_o agree_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v more_o plain_o expound_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o way_n to_o salvation_n more_o plentiful_o set_v down_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n than_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o moses_n or_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o these_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n all_o thing_n be_v so_o establish_v as_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n so_o that_o we_o must_v not_o look_v for_o any_o new_a revelation_n all_o these_o book_n we_o receive_v as_o canonical_a because_o they_o be_v divine_a for_o matter_n and_o form_n divine_o inspire_v by_o god_n sanctify_a and_o give_v to_o the_o church_n for_o their_o direction_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n sweet_o conâenting_v with_o other_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o with_o themselves_o receive_v always_o by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n they_o be_v write_v after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o apostle_n by_o lively_a voice_n first_o preach_v because_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v by_o their_o preach_n as_o also_o by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n be_v confirm_v against_o the_o contradiction_n and_o cavil_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o assent_n of_o believer_n general_o before_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o writing_n that_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v these_o book_n be_v acknowledge_v canonical_a both_o by_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n so_o that_o touch_v this_o matter_n there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o among_o the_o confess_a write_n of_o the_o scripture_n attest_v by_o all_o and_o not_o contradict_v by_o any_o the_o four_o gospel_n be_v first_o to_o be_v place_v and_o then_o the_o story_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v euseb._n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3_o 4._o and_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 8._o and_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 18._o the_o epistle_n 19_o doubt_v of_o by_o some_o for_o a_o while_n be_v first_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o james_n the_o second_o epistle_n of_o peter_n the_o second_o and_o three_o epistle_n of_o john_n the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v treat_v more_o when_o i_o come_v to_o handle_v the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n particular_o the_o story_n of_o the_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n have_v meet_v with_o very_a much_o opposition_n loc_n see_v gregory_n preface_n to_o his_o note_n upon_o some_o passage_n of_o scripture_n crojus_fw-la defend_v 7._o the_o truth_n of_o it_o observat._v in_o nou._n testam_fw-la c._n 17._o vide_fw-la seldeni_n vxorem_fw-la ebraicam_fw-la cap._n 11._o the_o inscription_n and_o title_n prefix_v before_o the_o epistle_n be_v no_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o add_v to_o the_o epistle_n by_o some_o other_o the_o subscription_n and_o postscript_n also_o of_o divers_a book_n be_v false_a counterfeit_a and_o capellus_n erroneous_a not_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o add_v afterward_o by_o the_o scribe_n which_o copy_v out_o the_o epistle_n the_o subscription_n bezam_n of_o the_o late_a epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o also_o to_o titus_n be_v supposititious_a they_o be_v neither_o find_v in_o the_o syriack_n nor_o in_o all_o greek_a copy_n timothy_n nor_o yet_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n these_o addition_n be_v make_v some_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v either_o historical_a doctrinal_a or_o prophetical_a 1._o historical_a historical_a contain_v matter_n of_o fact_n the_o history_n of_o 1._o christ_n exhibit_v in_o the_o four_o evangelist_n or_o gospel_n as_o they_o be_v style_v by_o god_n himself_o mark_v 1._o 1._o matthew_n mark_n luke_n and_o john_n call_v gospel_n because_o they_o contain_v a_o message_n of_o joy_n and_o gladness_n they_o all_o treat_v of_o one_o subject_n christ_n jesus_n incarnate_a be_v most_o true_a historian_n luk._n 1._o 2._o joh._n 21._o 24._o 2._o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o act_v write_v by_o luke_n thirty_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n so_o term_v of_o the_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o history_n though_o the_o act_n of_o other_o not_o apostles_n be_v there_o record_v 2._o dogmatical_a or_o doctrinal_a such_o as_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o instruction_n 1._o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o faith_n and_o manner_n common_o call_v epistle_n and_o that_o by_o warrant_n of_o the_o scripture_n 1_o thes._n 5._o 27._o 2_o pet._n 3._o 1_o 16._o because_o they_o be_v send_v to_o they_o who_o have_v already_o receive_v and_o profess_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n the_o apostle_n be_v oft_o time_n unable_a to_o instruct_v by_o their_o personal_a presence_n supply_v that_o by_o write_v epistle_n these_o be_v one_o and_o twenty_o write_v 1._o by_o paul_n 1._o to_o whole_a church_n 1._o gentile_n to_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o câninthians_n to_o the_o galatian_n to_o the_o ephesian_n to_o the_o philippian_n to_o the_o colossian_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n 2._o jew_n to_o the_o hebrew_n 2._o to_o particular_a person_n 1._o timothy_n 2._o titus_n 3._o philemon_n 2._o james_n one_o 3._o peter_n two_o 4._o john_n three_o 5._o jude_n one_o 3._o prophetical_a wherein_o under_o certain_a resemblance_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o bibl._n christ_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o time_n of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n be_v most_o true_o and_o wonderful_o describe_v and_o receive_v its_o name_n apocalypse_n of_o the_o argument_n beza_n piscator_fw-la calvin_n erasmus_n grotius_n have_v do_v well_o on_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o papist_n jansenius_n have_v do_v well_o on_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o lutheran_n chemnitius_n and_o gerhard_n of_o the_o protestant_n calvin_n maldonate_fw-it and_o de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr cameron_n scultetus_n and_o grotius_n have_v do_v well_o likewise_o on_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o john_n be_v apostle_n of_o the_o twelve_o mark_v and_o luke_n evangelist_n apostle_n 19_o be_v a_o name_n of_o office_n or_o dignity_n it_o note_v one_o send_v from_o another_o with_o command_n in_o special_a certain_a famous_a ambassador_n of_o christ._n the_o evangelist_n be_v comites_fw-la &_o vicarii_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la they_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o have_v curam_fw-la vicariam_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la as_o the_o apostle_n have_v curam_fw-la principalem_fw-la the_o title_n evangelist_n be_v take_v 1._o for_o such_o as_o write_v the_o gospel_n 2._o for_o such_o as_o teach_v the_o gospel_n and_o these_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o such_o as_o have_v ordinary_a place_n and_o gift_n or_o such_o who_o place_n and_o gift_n be_v extraordinary_a such_o evangelist_n be_v timothy_n and_o titus_n smectymn_n answ._n to_o a_o humble_a remonstrance_n sect._n 13._o matthew_n there_o be_v never_o any_o in_o the_o church_n which_o doubt_v of_o its_o authority_n some_o say_v he_o write_v in_o hebrew_n but_o that_o be_v uncertain_a as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v he_o interpret_v the_o hebrew_n name_n emanuel_n chap._n 1._o 23._o and_o those_o word_n câ_n 27._o 46._o therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o write_v not_o in_o hebrew_n for_o why_o shall_v one_o that_o write_v in_o hebrew_a interpret_v hebrew_n word_n to_o such_o as_o
babylon_n the_o great_a whore_n with_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n the_o subject_n of_o it_o be_v twofold_a 1._o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o the_o future_a state_n of_o it_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v and_o the_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o revel_v 1._o 19_o the_o three_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n contain_v seven_o several_a epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o several_a church_n of_o asia_n the_o other_o follow_v chapter_n be_v a_o prophetical_a history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o christ_n ascension_n to_o his_o second_o come_v the_o holy_a ghost_n foresee_v what_o labour_n satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n will_v take_v to_o weaken_v and_o impair_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o this_o above_o all_o other_o book_n wherein_o he_o prevail_v so_o far_o as_o some_o true_a church_n call_v the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o it_o into_o question_n have_v back_v it_o with_o a_o number_n of_o confirmation_n more_o than_o be_v in_o any_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n first_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v set_v in_o the_o forefront_n or_o face_n of_o it_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n chap._n 1._o vers_fw-la 1._o who_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o vers_n 11._o so_o in_o the_o several_a epistle_n to_o the_o church_n in_o several_a style_n he_o challenge_v they_o to_o be_v he_o thus_o say_v he_o 1._o that_o hold_v the_o seven_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n 2._o he_o which_o be_v first_o and_o last_o which_o be_v dead_a and_o be_v alive_a 3._o which_o have_v the_o sharp_a two_o edge_a sword_n 4._o which_o have_v eye_n like_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o his_o foot_n like_o brass_n 5._o which_o have_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o seven_o star_n 6._o he_o who_o be_v holy_a and_o true_a who_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n 7._o he_o who_o be_v amen_n the_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n second_o the_o instrument_n or_o penman_n his_o servant_n john_n the_o evangelist_n the_o apostle_n the_o divine_a who_o for_o the_o far_o and_o more_o full_a authority_n of_o it_o repeat_v his_o waltherus_n name_n at_o least_o thrice_o say_v i_o john_n chap._n 1._o 9_o and_o 21._o 1_o 2._o and_o 22._o 8._o wheââââ_n in_o the_o gospel_n he_o never_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o name_n there_o he_o write_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n here_o he_o write_v of_o himself_o and_o the_o revelation_n declare_v to_o he_o three_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n be_v five_o testimony_n heap_v together_o vers_n 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o 1._o of_o the_o angel_n 2._o of_o god_n himself_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n 3._o of_o jesus_n christ_n behold_v i_o come_v short_o 4._o of_o john_n i_o john_n hear_v and_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n 5._o the_o protestation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n v_o 18._o four_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o book_n do_v convince_v the_o authority_n thereof_o see_v everywhere_o the_o divinity_n of_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n do_v appear_v the_o word_n and_o sentence_n apocalypsin_n of_o other_o prophet_n be_v there_o set_v down_o part_n of_o the_o prophecy_n there_o deliver_v be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n accomplish_v by_o which_o the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v undoubted_o prove_v there_o be_v extant_a many_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o divinity_n and_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ._n five_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n greek_n and_o latin_a ascribe_v this_o book_n to_o john_n the_o apostle_n theophylact_fw-mi origen_n chrysostome_n tertullian_n hilary_n austin_n ambrose_n irenâus_n to_o deny_v then_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o book_n be_v contrasolem_fw-la obloqui_fw-la to_o gainsay_v the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n itself_o the_o chiliast_n abuse_v many_o testimony_n out_o of_o this_o book_n but_o those_o place_n have_v be_v 131._o clear_v long_o ago_o by_o the_o learned_a as_o bear_v another_o sense_n see_v dr_n raynolds_n conf._n with_o hart_n c._n 8._o p._n 406._o calvin_n be_v demand_v his_o opinion_n what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o revelation_n answer_v ingenious_o say_v one_o zepperus_n he_o know_v not_o at_o all_o what_o so_o obscure_a a_o writer_n mean_v se_fw-la penitus_fw-la ignorare_fw-la quid_fw-la velit_fw-la tam_fw-la obscurus_fw-la scriptor_n cajetane_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o exposition_n of_o jude_n confess_v that_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o therefore_o exponat_fw-la say_v he_o cui_fw-la deus_fw-la concesserit_fw-la it_o consist_v of_o two_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n the_o best_a expositor_n of_o it_o be_v ribera_n chapter_n brightman_n paraeus_n cartwright_n fulk_n dent_n forbes_n mede_n simonds_n ford_n 1._o the_o scripture_n write_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n sufficient_o prove_v that_o scripture_n christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v to_o come_v the_o old_a testament_n may_v convince_v the_o jew_n which_o deny_v the_o new_a testament_n of_o this_o truth_n john_n 5._o 39_o they_o that_o be_v those_o part_n of_o scripture_n write_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n there_o be_v no_o other_o scripture_n 43._o then_o write_v the_o 53_o of_o isaiah_n be_v a_o large_a history_n of_o his_o suffering_n we_o have_v also_o another_o book_n or_o testament_n more_o clear_o witness_v of_o christ_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 3._o 8._o so_o much_o may_v suffice_v to_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o divine_a canon_n the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o false_a canon_n follow_v chap._n v._o of_o the_o book_n call_v apocrypha_fw-la some_o heretic_n utter_o abolish_v the_o divine_a canon_n as_o the_o swingfeldians_n and_o libertine_n who_o contemn_v all_o scripture_n the_o manichee_n and_o marcionites_n refuse_v all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v those_o of_o the_o new_a script_n as_o if_o they_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n some_o diminish_v this_o canon_n as_o the_o sadducee_n who_o as_o whitaker_n and_o other_o hold_v reject_v all_o the_o other_o prophet_n but_o moses_n some_o enlarge_v it_o as_o the_o papist_n who_o hold_v that_o divers_a other_o book_n call_v by_o we_o apocrypha_fw-la i_o hide_a do_v belong_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o the_o other_o before_o name_v and_o they_o add_v also_o their_o tradition_n and_o unwritten_a word_n equal_v it_o with_o the_o scripture_n both_o these_o be_v accurse_v rev._n 22._o 18._o but_o against_o the_o first_o we_o thus_o argue_v whatsoever_o scripture_n 1._o be_v divine_o inspire_v 2._o christ_n command_v to_o search_v 3._o to_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n appeal_v and_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o it_o that_o be_v canonical_a and_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v divine_o inspire_v 210._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o where_o he_o speak_v even_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o be_v gather_v both_o from_o the_o universal_a all_o writing_n viz._n holy_a in_o the_o 15_o verse_n and_o from_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n because_o in_o the_o time_n of_o timothy_n infancy_n little_a or_o nothing_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v publish_v 2._o christ_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n but_o to_o the_o people_n in_o general_n to_o search_v it_o john_n 5._o 39_o this_o famous_a elogium_fw-la be_v add_v that_o it_o give_v testimony_n of_o he_o and_o that_o we_o may_v find_v eternal_a life_n in_o it_o 3._o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n appeal_v to_o it_o and_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o it_o luke_n 24._o 27._o rom._n 3._o 21._o act_n 10._o 43._o and_o 17._o 11._o and_o 20._o 43._o and_o 26._o 20._o the_o new_a testament_n give_v testimony_n of_o the_o old_a and_o peter_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 19_o of_o paul_n epistle_n the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n which_o be_v also_o call_v the_o second_o canon_n follow_v to_o which_o these_o book_n belong_v tobit_n judith_n first_o and_o second_o of_o the_o maccabee_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la baruch_n addition_n to_o 3._o daniel_n and_o esther_n for_o these_o neither_o contain_v truth_n perfect_o in_o themselves_o nor_o be_v sanctify_v by_o god_n in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o canon_n of_o faith_n and_o although_o abusive_o from_o custom_n they_o be_v call_v canonical_a yet_o proper_o in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o canonical_a by_o the_o name_n of_o apocryphal_a the_o false_a canon_n be_v that_o which_o after_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la increase_v be_v constitute_v by_o humane_a opinion_n for_o the_o papist_n as_o well_v as_o we_o reject_v for_o apocryphal_a the_o three_o and_o four_o book_n of_o ezra_n the_o prayer_n of_o manasses_n the_o three_o
can_v make_v a_o creature_n of_o infinite_a perfection_n simple_o or_o creature_n indeed_o infinite_a in_o number_n for_o so_o they_o shall_v be_v god_n for_o the_o divine_a power_n be_v so_o far_o exercise_v on_o the_o object_n as_o the_o passive_a power_n of_o the_o object_n extend_v itself_o but_o infinite_a perfection_n import_v a_o pure_a act._n three_o in_o respect_n of_o duration_n which_o be_v perpetual_a as_o his_o essence_n be_v therefore_o this_o force_n and_o power_n of_o god_n be_v deserve_o style_v omnipotency_n job_n 42._o 2._o god_n 37._o power_n be_v not_o only_a potentia_n or_o multipotentia_fw-la but_o omnipotentia_fw-la for_o degree_n infinite_a shall_v any_o matter_n be_v hard_a for_o the_o lord_n the_o scripture_n confirm_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n job._n 1._o affirmative_o when_o it_o call_v god_n abbir_n job_n 34._o 20._o shaddai_n alsufficient_a gen._n 35._o 11._o deut._n 10._o 17._o psal._n 89._o 13._o gibbor_n powerful_a deut._n 10._o 17._o 2._o effective_o when_o it_o witness_v that_o god_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n mat._n 3._o 9_o &_o 19_o 16._o mark_v 14._o 36._o luk._n 18._o 26._o eph_n 3._o 20._o hitherto_o belong_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n and_o supernatural_a miracle_n 3._o negative_o when_o it_o deny_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v difficult_a to_o he_o muchlesse_a impossible_a gen._n 18._o 14._o jer._n 32._o 17_o 27._o luke_n 1._o 37._o matth._n 19_o 36._o 4._o symbolical_o when_o it_o give_v he_o a_o strong_a right_a hand_n a_o stretch_a out_o arm_n 1_o chron._n 29._o 12._o jer._n 32._o 17._o ephes._n 1._o 19_o reason_n prove_v it_o also_o 1._o his_o essence_n as_o be_v say_v be_v infinite_a therefore_o his_o power_n 2._o he_o be_v most_o perfect_a therefore_o most_o powerful_a 3._o whatsoever_o good_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o creature_n the_o same_o be_v perfect_o and_o it_o infinite_o in_o god_n some_o observe_v that_o this_o be_v express_v seventy_o time_n in_o scripture_n that_o god_n be_v almighty_a he_o be_v the_o only_a potentate_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 15._o the_o psalmist_n say_v power_n belong_v to_o god_n the_o first_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n teach_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v omnipotent_a god_n can_v work_v by_o weak_a mean_n without_o mean_n contrary_a to_o mean_n it_o show_v one_o to_o be_v a_o skilful_a artist_n when_o he_o can_v effect_v that_o by_o a_o unfit_a instrument_n which_o another_o can_v scarce_o do_v with_o a_o most_o fit_a one_o as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o apelles_n that_o with_o a_o coal_n take_v from_o the_o fire_n he_o so_o express_v he_o by_o who_o he_o be_v invite_v to_o ptolemy_n dinner_n that_o all_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n of_o it_o know_v the_o man_n but_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o god_n to_o perform_v what_o he_o will_v with_o unfit_a instrument_n since_o he_o need_v no_o instrument_n at_o all_o to_o effect_v what_o he_o please_v god_n power_n be_v essential_a and_o independent_a it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o power_n john_n 19_o 8._o it_o reach_v beyond_o his_o will_n mat._n 26._o 35._o 2._o it_o extend_v to_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o nor_o never_o will_v be_v as_o to_o raise_v up_o child_n he_o of_o stone_n to_o abraham_n matth._n 3._o 9_o to_o give_v christ_n more_o than_o ten_o legion_n of_o angel_n the_o object_n of_o divine_a power_n be_v all_o thing_n simple_o and_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n possible_a which_o neither_o contradict_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n nor_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o creature_n those_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o these_o be_v absolute_o impossible_a such_o thing_n god_n can_v do_v because_o he_o can_v will_v they_o nor_o can_v he_o will_v and_o do_v contrary_a thing_n as_o good_a and_o evil_n or_o contradictory_n as_o to_o be_v and_o not_o to_o be_v 8._o that_o a_o true_a thing_n be_v false_a that_o any_o thing_n while_o it_o be_v shall_v not_o be_v god_n can_v sin_v lie_v deny_v change_n or_o destroy_v himself_o suffer_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n do_v ex_fw-la diametro_fw-la oppose_v the_o divine_a immutable_a simple_a most_o true_a and_o perfect_a essence_n god_n can_v create_v another_o god_n nor_o cause_v a_o man_n to_o be_v unreasonable_a nor_o a_o body_n to_o be_v infinite_a and_o every_o where_o for_o these_o thing_n contradict_v the_o essential_a definition_n of_o a_o creature_n of_o a_o man_n and_o a_o body_n not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o impotency_n but_o power_n for_o to_o be_v able_a to_o do_v opposite_a thing_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o infirmity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o remain_v altogether_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o state_n god_n be_v therefore_o omnipotent_a because_o he_o can_v do_v these_o thing_n which_o argue_v impotency_n as_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v the_o sun_n be_v full_a of_o light_n it_o can_v be_v dark_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o proper_a a_o speech_n to_o say_v god_n can_v do_v these_o thing_n as_o to_o say_v these_o be_v act_n too_o mean_a base_a and_o worthless_a to_o be_v effect_n of_o divine_a power_n haec_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la fieri_fw-la rather_o than_o deus_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la facere_fw-la say_v aquinas_n god_n omnipotence_n lie_v in_o this_o *_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v absolute_o 3_o simple_o and_o general_o possible_a a_o possible_a thing_n be_v that_o the_o do_v of_o which_o may_v be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o which_o be_v do_v will_v argue_v power_n and_o perfection_n a_o impossible_a that_o which_o can_v be_v a_o effect_n of_o wisdom_n and_o power_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v will_v argue_v weakness_n and_o imperfection_n in_o god_n the_o arminian_n say_v that_o god_n be_v often_o frustrate_v of_o his_o end_n which_o derogate_v from_o his_o power_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n he_o do_v it_o with_o a_o word_n let_v there_o be_v light_n say_v he_o and_o there_o be_v light_a 3._o he_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n of_o himself_o without_o any_o creature_n help_v god_n power_n be_v style_v may_v of_o power_n ephes._n 1._o 19_o and_o it_o be_v see_v in_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n make_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o therefore_o that_o follow_v the_o other_o in_o the_o cr_v 2._o in_o his_o work_n of_o providence_n christ_n be_v a_o mighty_a god_n and_o saviour_n to_o his_o people_n isa._n 7_o 6._o psal._n 89._o 19_o isa._n 63._o 1._o heb._n 7._o 25._o rev._n 18._o 8._o he_o be_v strong_a in_o himself_o he_o be_v mighty_a 1._o in_o suffer_v he_o bear_v the_o revenge_a justice_n of_o god_n he_o suffer_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o crosse._n 2._o in_o do_v 1._o make_v all_o john_n 1._o 5._o col._n 1._o 16._o 2._o preserve_v all_o col._n 1._o 17._o 3._o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o he_o be_v strong_a in_o his_o saint_n 1._o in_o the_o gather_n of_o his_o church_n 2._o in_o uphold_v it_o 3._o in_o raise_v all_o people_n out_o of_o their_o affliction_n 4._o in_o his_o ordinance_n prayer_n sacrament_n word_n rom._n 1._o 16._o 5._o in_o his_o grace_n faith_n heb._n â1_n love_n 1_o cor._n 13._o god_n power_n be_v limit_v and_o restrain_v 1._o by_o his_o nature_n he_o can_v contradict_v himself_o 2._o regulate_v by_o his_o will_n he_o can_v do_v evil_a 3._o by_o his_o glory_n he_o can_v lie_v he_o be_v truth_n itself_o nor_o be_v tempt_v of_o evil_a james_n 1._o 13._o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d potentia_fw-la and_o potestas_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o potestas_fw-la be_v proper_o authority_n right_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n as_o a_o king_n have_v over_o his_o subject_n a_o father_n over_o his_o child_n a_o husband_n over_o his_o wife_n a_o master_n over_o his_o servant_n of_o which_o christ_n speak_v john_n 17._o 2._o mat._n 28._o 18._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o potentia_fw-la be_v proper_o strength_n to_o do_v something_o as_o some_o great_a king_n may_v have_v power_n to_o overcome_v his_o enemy_n over_o which_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n a_o layman_n have_v power_n to_o give_v bread_n and_o wine_n but_o he_o have_v not_o potestatem_fw-la a_o calling_n or_o right_a to_o do_v it_o it_o serve_v both_o for_o a_o spur_n to_o do_v well_o since_o god_n be_v able_a to_o save_v gen._n 17._o 1._o and_o a_o 29._o bridle_n to_o restrain_v from_o evil_a see_v he_o have_v power_n to_o destroy_v we_o shall_v therefore_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o his_o mighty_a hand_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 6._o luke_n 12._o 5._o it_o reprove_v the_o wicked_a which_o care_v not_o for_o god_n power_n but_o provoke_v the_o almighty_a god_n matth._n 10._o 28._o and_o so_o contend_v with_o power_n itself_o none_o shall_v deliver_v
constitution_n he_o can_v bear_v it_o without_o any_o disturbance_n and_o this_o have_v a_o woe_n woe_n to_o those_o that_o be_v strong_a to_o drink_v that_o have_v strong_a brain_n and_o body_n to_o carry_v their_o liquor_n away_o and_o never_o cry_v out_o with_o he_o duos_fw-la sole_n video_fw-la 2._o actual_a either_o total_a and_o complete_a when_o reason_n be_v full_o intercept_v and_o that_o be_v he_o to_o be_v stark_o drink_v to_o be_v a_o vivum_fw-la cadaver_n as_o chrysostome_n call_v it_o well_o a_o breathe_a carcase_n one_o call_v they_o ventri-dâmones_a belly-devil_n who_o like_o dâgenes_n can_v live_v in_o a_o barrel_n all_o their_o life_n time_n 2._o partial_a when_o a_o man_n fancy_n be_v not_o whole_o disturb_v yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o tipple_v that_o both_o his_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o house_n run_v round_o with_o he_o mean_v to_o avoid_v it_o 1._o shun_v the_o company_n of_o drunkard_n and_o all_o occasion_n 2._o cry_v to_o god_n to_o help_v you_o against_o this_o vice_n and_o consider_v the_o terrible_a threat_n against_o it_o 1_o cor._n 6._o 9_o 3._o get_v thy_o sensual_a appetite_n mortify_v 4._o taste_v of_o christ_n wine_n the_o sweetness_n of_o have_v communion_n with_o he_o ephes._n 5._o 18._o chap._n xviii_o of_o envy_n error_n flattery_n gluttony_n envy_n envy_n be_v a_o grief_n for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o other_o est_fw-la 29._o aegritudo_fw-la suscepta_fw-la propter_fw-la alterius_fw-la res_fw-la secundas_fw-la quae_fw-la nihil_fw-la noceant_fw-la invidenti_fw-la the_o first_o instance_n that_o we_o have_v of_o sin_n be_v adam_n pride_n and_o cain_n envy_n envy_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o strife_n they_o be_v often_o couple_v rom._n 1._o 29._o &_o 13._o 13._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 3._o 2_o cor._n 12._o 20._o gal._n 5._o 20._o jam._n 3._o 14._o natural_a corruption_n do_v most_o of_o all_o bewray_v itself_o by_o envy_n the_o devil_n first_o envy_v we_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o ever_o since_o we_o have_v envy_v one_o another_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v often_o surprise_v with_o it_o numb_a 11._o 29._o john_n 21._o 20_o 21._o it_o break_v both_o table_n at_o once_o it_o begin_v in_o discontent_n with_o god_n and_o end_v in_o injury_n to_o man_n macrobius_n l._n 2._o sat._n c._n 2._o say_v acute_o of_o mutius_n a_o malevolous_a man_n be_v sad_a than_o he_o be_v wont_a aut_fw-la mutio_n nescio_fw-la quid_fw-la incommodi_fw-la accessit_fw-la aut_fw-la nescio_fw-la cui_fw-la aliquid_fw-la boni_fw-la the_o heathen_n when_o they_o see_v a_o envious_a man_n sad_a they_o will_v demand_v whether_o harm_n have_v happen_v unto_o he_o or_o good_a unto_o his_o neighbour_n aristotle_n call_v it_o the_o antagonist_n of_o the_o fortunate_a parum_fw-la alicui_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la ipse_fw-la sit_fw-la foelix_fw-la nisi_fw-la alter_fw-la fuerit_fw-la infoelix_fw-la livor_fw-la semper_fw-la lippus_fw-la est_fw-la say_v petrarch_n this_o humour_n be_v always_o ill-sighted_a all_o blear-eyed_a man_n be_v offend_v and_o hurt_v with_o the_o light_n so_o envy_n be_v provoke_v at_o another_o good_a and_o honour_n the_o better_a the_o party_n envy_v be_v the_o better_a he_o behave_v himself_o the_o more_o bitter_a the_o envy_a do_v grow_v against_o he_o and_o the_o more_o his_o hatred_n increase_v saul_n have_v still_o a_o more_o violent_a spleen_n against_o david_n by_o how_o much_o he_o discover_v more_o wisdom_n courage_n and_o the_o more_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o servant_n be_v set_v upon_o he_o who_o can_v stand_v before_o envy_n say_v solomon_n prov._n 27._o 4._o it_o be_v the_o rottenness_n of_o the_o bone_n pro._n 14._o 3._o and_o so_o the_o just_a of_o all_o vice_n because_o it_o bring_v with_o it_o its_o own_o vengeance_n sed_fw-la videt_fw-la ingratos_fw-la intabescitque_fw-la videndo_fw-la successus_fw-la hominum_fw-la carpitque_fw-la &_o carpitur_fw-la unà _fw-la suppliciumque_fw-la suum_fw-la est_fw-la ovid._n met._n 11._o fab._n 12._o as_o the_o rust_n consume_v iron_n so_o this_o vice_n the_o envious_a man_n anacharsis_n call_v it_o serram_fw-la animae_fw-la and_o socrates_n ulcus_fw-la when_o hercules_n have_v vanquish_v so_o many_o fierce_a monster_n comperit_fw-la invidiam_fw-la supremo_fw-la sine_fw-la domandam_fw-la wife_n he_o grapple_v at_o last_o with_o envy_n as_o the_o worst_a erasm._n lib._n 17._o of_o his_o epist._n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o sir_n thomas_n more_o say_v of_o conradus_n goclenius_n invidere_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la ne_fw-la per_fw-la somnium_fw-la quidem_fw-la unquam_fw-la intellexit_fw-la tantus_fw-la est_fw-la ingenii_fw-la candour_n the_o objectum_fw-la quod_fw-la of_o it_o be_v good_a of_o any_o kind_n true_a apparent_a honest_a profitable_a pleasant_a of_o mind_n body_n fortune_n fame_n virtue_n itself_o not_o except_v the_o objectum_fw-la cui_fw-la be_v general_o any_o other_o man_n superior_a inferior_a equal_a we_o envy_v a_o superior_a because_o we_o be_v not_o equal_v to_o he_o a_o inferior_a lest_o he_o shall_v be_v equal_a to_o we_o a_o equal_a because_o he_o be_v our_o equal_a man_n of_o the_o same_o trade_n or_o profession_n envy_v each_o other_o figulus_n figulo_fw-la inuidet_fw-la faber_n fabro_n death_n free_v a_o man_n from_o it_o extra_n omnem_fw-la invidiae_fw-la aleam_fw-la pascitur_fw-la in_o vivis_fw-la livor_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o chief_a cause_n of_o it_o be_v pride_n and_o inordinate_a love_n of_o a_o man_n self_n the_o impulsive_a envy_n cause_n be_v manifold_a as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n a_o corrival_n hatred_n when_o one_o loathe_v and_o wish_v ill_a to_o another_o agree_v with_o envy_n 1._o in_o the_o subject_n always_o he_o which_o envy_v another_o hate_v he_o but_o not_o on_o the_o contrary_n second_o in_o the_o efficient_a cause_n which_o be_v pride_n and_o a_o blind_a love_n of_o a_o man_n self_n it_o differ_v from_o it_o first_o in_o the_o subject_n for_o hatred_n may_v be_v in_o one_o in_o who_o envy_n be_v not_o 4._o second_o in_o the_o objectum_fw-la quod_fw-la which_o in_o envy_n be_v only_o good_a but_o in_o hatred_n it_o may_v be_v evil_a three_o in_o the_o objectum_fw-la cui_fw-la which_o be_v large_a in_o hatred_n then_o envy_n for_o we_o envy_v man_n only_o not_o god_n nor_o ourselves_o but_o other_o but_o we_o may_v hate_v not_o only_o other_o man_n but_o ourselves_o and_o other_o creature_n yea_o god_n himself_o error_n error_n be_v to_o judge_v otherwise_o then_o the_o thing_n be_v take_v truth_n for_o falsehood_n or_o falsehood_n do_v for_o truth_n usquequaque_fw-la fidei_fw-la venena_fw-la non_fw-la cessant_fw-la spargere_fw-la say_v augustine_n of_o his_o time_n in_o gregory_n nazianzen_n day_n there_o be_v six_o hundred_o error_n in_o the_o church_n selat_fw-la on_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 18_o 19_o the_o doctrine_n only_o of_o the_o trinity_n ecclesiae_fw-la remain_v undefiled_a in_o popery_n obstinate_o to_o defend_v a_o error_n in_o thing_n indifferent_a make_v a_o man_n a_o schismatic_a and_o in_o point_n necessary_a and_o fundamental_a a_o heretic_n it_o be_v the_o great_a judgement_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v give_v over_o to_o error_n revel_v 13._o 8._o judâ_n v._n 4._o 2_o thes._n 2._o 11._o all_o the_o primitive_a father_n spend_v most_o of_o their_o zeal_n and_o painful_a write_n against_o heresy_n and_o error_n all_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v epistle_n areexpres_o warn_v either_o positive_o to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o truth_n to_o hold_v fast_o their_o profession_n or_o negative_o to_o beware_v of_o and_o to_o avoid_v false_a teacher_n and_o not_o to_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o divers_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n see_v mr_n gillesp._n misc._n c._n 11._o &_o 12._o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o enumerate_v those_o heresy_n which_o give_v occasion_n for_o the_o introduce_v of_o every_o article_n in_o the_o creed_n vide_fw-la sanfordum_fw-la de_fw-la descensu_fw-la christi_fw-la ad_fw-la infer_v l._n 4._o p._n 29_o 30._o it_o be_v well_o conclude_v in_o the_o 39_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o every_o ten_o year_n at_o the_o far_a there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a council_n hold_v to_o reform_v such_o error_n in_o the_o church_n as_o probable_o in_o that_o time_n will_v arise_v preservative_n from_o error_n 1._o have_v a_o care_n to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 12._o special_o the_o main_a truth_n of_o religion_n look_v to_o repentance_n faith_n daily_a examination_n matth._n 13._o 45._o rom._n 6._o 17._o corrupt_a teacher_n beguile_v none_o but_o unstable_a soul_n 2._o get_v experimental_a knowledge_n ephes._n 3._o 17._o and_o mourn_v to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n corrupt_v revel_v 11._o 3._o 3._o love_v not_o any_o sin_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 19_o 4._o try_v the_o spirit_n 1_o john_n 4._o 1._o every_o man_n pretend_v to_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n bring_v aug._n their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o rule_n try_v to_o what_o end_n the_o doctrine_n tend_v whether_o to_o exalt_v god_n and_o abase_v man_n matth._n 7._o
return_v their_o wrong_n upon_o they_o 3._o pride_n possess_v all_o man_n natural_o this_o stir_v man_n up_o to_o revenge_v 4._o every_o man_n heart_n abound_v with_o self-love_n and_o love_n can_v endure_v to_o see_v evil_o do_v to_o the_o person_n love_v 5._o we_o be_v all_o void_a of_o charity_n and_o love_n to_o our_o brethren_n hence_o there_o be_v a_o aptness_n to_o be_v provoke_v and_o do_v they_o hurt_v if_o we_o seem_v to_o have_v any_o cause_n 6._o it_o give_v a_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o hatred_n or_o envy_n of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o exercise_n as_o scratch_v do_v to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o itch_n revenge_n be_v a_o requite_v of_o evil_a for_o evil_n a_o do_v hurt_v again_o to_o they_o from_o who_o one_o have_v receive_v hurt_v and_o measure_v ill_a measure_n for_o ill_a measure_n a_o dog_n in_o the_o law_n be_v a_o unclean_a beast_n because_o he_o be_v revengeful_a 1._o revenge_n transgress_v the_o plain_a light_n of_o nature_n which_o bid_v we_o do_v as_o we_o will_v be_v do_v to_o and_o every_o man_n will_v be_v forgive_v and_o not_o have_v revenge_n take_v upon_o he_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a enemy_n to_o peace_n and_o concord_n which_o we_o shall_v seek_v and_o follow_v after_o 3._o injurious_a to_o god_n a_o prevent_n of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o careful_a enough_o to_o execute_v justice_n the_o best_a and_o wise_a heathen_a writer_n of_o moral_a virtue_n have_v deliver_v it_o as_o a_o general_a principle_n that_o a_o man_n must_v not_o hurt_v any_o other_o but_o with_o this_o caution_n and_o limitation_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o provoke_v by_o some_o injury_n photion_n when_o he_o have_v do_v great_a service_n for_o athens_n yet_o they_o ungrateful_o put_v he_o to_o death_n he_o charge_v his_o son_n at_o his_o death_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o remember_v the_o athenian_a injury_n the_o king_n of_o france_n after_o will_v not_o revenge_v the_o wrong_n do_v to_o he_o before_o when_o duke_n of_o orleans_n sign_n of_o revenge_n 1._o a_o pitiless_a disposition_n by_o which_o one_o be_v rather_o glad_a then_o sorry_a for_o another_o evil_n 2._o excess_n in_o punish_v some_o direction_n or_o mean_n for_o the_o crucify_a of_o this_o unruly_a affection_n 1._o you_o must_v subdue_v pride_n and_o labour_n to_o make_v yourselves_o base_a and_o vile_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n be_v worthy_a of_o all_o the_o wrong_n and_o indignity_n that_o can_v be_v offer_v to_o we_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o sinfulness_n 2._o you_o must_v observe_v god_n in_o wrong_n as_o david_n the_o lord_n have_v send_v he_o to_o curse_v 3._o you_o must_v often_o consider_v of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o forgive_a your_o sin_n many_o and_o heinous_a eph._n 4._o 12._o and_o 5._o 2._o 4._o you_o must_v often_o ponder_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o duty_n which_o appear_v by_o three_o thing_n 1._o the_o clear_a and_o express_v commandment_n give_v about_o it_o matt._n 5._o 39_o resist_a evil_a that_o be_v by_o do_v the_o like_a evil_n to_o he_o which_o he_o do_v to_o thou_o but_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o bear_v that_o and_o another_o rather_o than_o by_o do_v the_o like_a to_o repel_v the_o former_a whereby_o he_o meet_v with_o the_o cavil_n which_o flesh_n do_v enforce_v to_o justify_v revenge_n or_o else_o i_o shall_v be_v perpetual_o obnoxious_a to_o wrong_n be_v it_o so_o say_v our_o saviour_n thou_o must_v rather_o bear_v it_o then_o resist_v rom._n 12._o 17._o and_o 19_o 1_o thes._n 5._o 15._o no_o man_n may_v render_v to_o any_o evil_n for_o evil_n that_o be_v evil_a word_n for_o evil_a word_n evil_a deed_n for_o evil_a deed_n taunt_v for_o taunt_v blow_v for_o blow_n 2._o the_o great_a danger_n if_o it_o be_v not_o mortify_v our_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v pardon_v we_o pray_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n forgive_v as_o we_o forgive_v he_o therefore_o which_o forgive_v not_o can_v never_o have_v any_o true_a assurance_n of_o be_v forgive_v mat._n 6._o 14_o 15._o âo_o as_o manifest_v a_o promise_n and_o threat_v as_o any_o the_o scripture_n contain_v or_o can_v be_v make_v now_o to_o forgive_v a_o wrong_n and_o requite_v it_o with_o some_o evil_n do_v to_o the_o wrongdoer_n be_v as_o quite_o contrary_a as_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o he_o which_o will_v do_v the_o one_o do_v not_o the_o other_o as_o he_o which_o sue_v and_o imprison_v a_o man_n for_o debt_n do_v not_o forgive_v his_o debt_n so_o he_o that_o recompense_v a_o man_n evil_n for_o his_o evil_n do_v not_o forgive_v his_o evil_n 3._o the_o worthy_a example_n which_o we_o have_v of_o good_a man_n that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o mortify_v it_o as_o christ_n and_o other_o saint_n to_o these_o meditation_n add_v fervent_a prayer_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o season_v our_o heart_n with_o humility_n meekness_n forbearance_n that_o he_o will_v strengthen_v we_o to_o pass_v by_o wrong_n injury_n indignity_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o his_o spirit_n to_o crucify_v this_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n scandal_n a_o scandal_n or_o offence_n be_v that_o which_o be_v or_o may_v be_v in_o itself_o a_o occasion_n of_o fall_v to_o 14._o another_o any_o thing_n whereby_o we_o so_o offend_v another_o as_o that_o he_o be_v hinder_v from_o good_a draw_v into_o or_o confirm_v in_o evil_a be_v a_o scandal_n one_o say_v it_o be_v a_o indiscreet_a or_o uncharitable_a abuse_n of_o my_o christian_a liberty_n there_o be_v scandalum_fw-la 1_o datum_fw-la 2_o acceptum_fw-la a_o scandal_n give_v when_o a_o man_n do_v that_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o unlawful_a or_o else_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a he_o do_v it_o in_o a_o undue_a manner_n rom._n 14._o 20_o 21._o first_o scandal_n give_v 1._o when_o man_n by_o corrupt_a doctrine_n endeavour_v to_o justify_v wicked_a practice_n rom._n 16._o 17._o 2._o by_o sinful_a practice_n prov_n 29._o 6._o and_o 22._o 15._o 3._o by_o give_v just_a ground_n of_o offence_n in_o appearance_n of_o evil_a 1_o thessaly_n 5._o 22._o 2_o cââ_n 8._o 19_o 20._o 4._o in_o the_o abuse_n of_o lawful_a liberty_n go_v to_o the_o utmost_a bound_n of_o it_o rom._n 14._o per_fw-la tot_fw-la second_o a_o scandal_n or_o offence_n take_v when_o man_n take_v offence_n at_o that_o which_o be_v good_a where_o there_o be_v neither_o evil_a nor_o any_o appearance_n of_o it_o joh._n 6._o 61._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 7._o man_n take_v offence_n at_o true_a doctrine_n and_o good_a action_n the_o disciple_n at_o christ_n doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 2._o when_o their_o sin_n be_v reprove_v leu._n 19_o 16_o 17._o schism_n schism_n in_o the_o church_n be_v much_o like_a sedition_n in_o the_o state_n as_o the_o name_n of_o heresy_n 73._o though_o it_o be_v common_a to_o any_o opinion_n whereof_o one_o make_v choice_n whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a in_o which_o sense_n constantine_n the_o great_a call_v the_o true_a faith_n catholicam_fw-la &_o sanctissimam_fw-la haeresin_fw-la yet_o in_o the_o ordinary_a use_n it_o be_v now_o apply_v only_o to_o the_o choice_n of_o such_o opinion_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n so_o the_o name_n of_o schism_n though_o it_o import_v any_o scissure_n or_o rent_v of_o one_o from_o another_o yet_o now_o by_o the_o vulgar_a use_n of_o divine_n it_o be_v appropriate_v only_o to_o such_o a_o rent_n or_o division_n as_o be_v make_v for_o a_o unjust_a cause_n and_o from_o those_o to_o who_o he_o or_o they_o who_o be_v separate_v aught_o to_o unite_v themselves_o and_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o tota_n ratio_fw-la schismatis_fw-la the_o very_a essence_n of_o a_o schism_n consist_v in_o the_o separate_n from_o the_o church_n i_o say_v from_o the_o true_a and_o orthodoxal_a church_n it_o be_v a_o rent_v or_o dissolve_v of_o that_o unity_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o christian_n see_v m_n marshall_n sermon_n on_o rom._n 12._o 4_o 5._o it_o be_v a_o memorable_a speech_n of_o calvin_n who_o say_v he_o will_v willing_o travel_v all_o over_o the_o sea_n and_o country_n in_o the_o world_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n cameron_n well_o distinguish_v of_o a_o double_a schism_n 1._o negative_a which_o be_v a_o bare_a secession_n or_o subduction_n and_o be_v unlawful_a non_fw-la separatio_fw-la sed_fw-la causa_fw-la facit_fw-la schismaticum_fw-la cassand_n 2._o positive_a when_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a consociation_n which_o use_v ecclesiastical_a law_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n separatim_fw-la which_o he_o call_v set_v up_o a_o altar_n against_o a_o altar_n this_o be_v call_v schism_n antonomastic_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d s_o and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d
ãâã_d say_v he_o de_fw-fr eccles._n different_a form_n of_o church_n and_o church-government_n in_o one_o state_n must_v needs_o lay_v a_o foundation_n of_o strife_n and_o division_n therein_o it_o be_v no_o wisdom_n say_v m._n durie_n in_o a_o letter_n in_o a_o state_n to_o reject_v a_o approve_a way_n of_o government_n which_o all_o the_o best_a reform_a church_n have_v receive_v all_o this_o while_n and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v god_n way_n and_o by_o experience_n find_v to_o be_v safe_a sound_a and_o instead_o of_o it_o to_o take_v up_o another_o which_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o know_v what_o it_o be_v nor_o be_v ever_o try_v but_o in_o two_o or_o at_o the_o most_o three_o church_n and_o that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o few_o year_n the_o slight_a the_o cause_n of_o separation_n the_o great_a the_o fault_n of_o schism_n when_o man_n hold_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o orthodox_n truth_n yet_o separate_v for_o lesser_a matter_n the_o true_a saint_n in_o the_o 7._o church_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v never_o bid_v go_v out_o of_o they_o though_o they_o be_v very_o corrupt_a as_o they_o be_v out_o of_o babylon_n m._n vines_n the_o first_o separatist_n in_o the_o scripture_n say_v one_o be_v cain_n gen._n 4._o 16._o enforcement_n to_o love_n be_v clear_a 1_o cor._n 13._o 1._o that_o question_n of_o separation_n in_o scripture_n be_v dark_a see_v m._n gillespy_n miscel_n c._n 10._o and_o 15._o and_o m._n manton_n on_o jam._n 3._o 17._o schisma_fw-la est_fw-la secessio_fw-la in_o religionis_fw-la negotio_fw-la vel_fw-la temeraria_fw-la vel_fw-la injusta_fw-la cameron_n de_fw-fr eocles_n schism_n be_v a_o causeless_a separation_n from_o external_a communion_n with_o any_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n m._n ball_n against_o separation_n c._n 8._o schism_n be_v a_o breach_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n d._n field_n l._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 5._o we_o do_v not_o leave_v communion_n of_o true_a church_n for_o corruption_n and_o sin_n but_o only_o 57_o abstain_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o evil_n in_o our_o own_o person_n and_o witness_v against_o it_o in_o other_o still_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n you_o send_v i_o unto_o such_o a_o book_n of_o m._n robinson_n as_o himself_o do_v begin_v to_o revoke_v pubpublique_o as_o be_v unsound_a in_o divers_a thing_n whereas_o i_o refer_v you_o unto_o a_o late_a book_n of_o his_o 59_o make_v with_o ripe_a deliberation_n and_o in_o no_o part_n that_o i_o hear_v of_o public_o revoke_v his_o book_n which_o you_o send_v i_o unto_o be_v his_o justification_n of_o separation_n be_v sick_a of_o king_n jehorams_fw-mi incurable_a disease_n the_o gut_n of_o it_o fall_v out_o day_n by_o day_n yea_o he_o open_o pluck_v out_o some_o of_o the_o bowel_n thereof_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o they_o especial_o who_o much_o follow_v m._n robinson_n england_n chap._n xxiii_o of_o sedition_n self-love_n self-seeking_a slander_n sedition_n sedition_n be_v a_o sin_n whereto_o people_n be_v much_o incline_v 2._o it_o be_v to_o leave_v our_o present_a governor_n which_o rule_v we_o according_a to_o law_n and_o follow_v other_o governor_n who_o rise_v up_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n to_o leave_v a_o david_n and_o follow_v a_o sheba_n the_o israelite_n raise_v sedition_n against_o david_n by_o mean_n of_o absalon_n and_o achitophel_n and_o proceed_v so_o far_o in_o their_o rebellion_n that_o they_o bring_v it_o to_o a_o pitch_a field_n and_o will_v not_o give_v over_o till_o their_o captain_n with_o twenty_o thousand_o more_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o battle_n 2_o sam._n 19_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n stir_v up_o a_o great_a multitude_n against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n at_o another_o time_n of_o themselves_o they_o rise_v against_o moses_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o stone_n he_o because_o they_o want_v water_n at_o another_o time_n they_o cry_v to_o have_v a_o captain_n and_o return_v back_o to_o egypt_n m._n hobbs_n in_o his_o rule_n of_o government_n c._n 12._o reckon_v up_o these_o two_o among_o other_o wild_a one_o as_o seditious_a opinion_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n belong_v to_o each_o single_a man_n and_o say_v legitimate_a king_n make_v the_o thing_n they_o command_v just_a by_o command_v they_o and_o those_o which_o they_o forbid_v unjust_a by_o forbid_v they_o this_o be_v to_o make_v subject_n beast_n and_o the_o magistrate_n god_n 2._o that_o faith_n and_o holiness_n be_v not_o acquire_v by_o study_n and_o natural_a reason_n but_o be_v supernatural_o infuse_v and_o inspire_v unto_o man_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o i_o understand_v not_o why_o we_o shall_v be_v command_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o why_o any_o man_n who_o be_v true_o a_o christian_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o prophet_n this_o opinion_n be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o sound_a divine_n that_o i_o need_v not_o spend_v time_n to_o confute_v it_o see_v phil._n 1._o 29._o eph._n 1._o 8._o heb._n 12._o 2._o one_o indeed_o say_v the_o habit_n of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n be_v infuse_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o acquisite_a god_n have_v ordain_v not_o to_o infuse_v they_o but_o upon_o the_o mean_n of_o hear_v pray_v care_v study_v and_o endeavour_v some_o say_v there_o 11._o be_v no_o grace_n wrought_v in_o we_o but_o several_a act_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o spirit_n act_v with_o we_o where_o grace_n be_v wrought_v we_o need_v the_o spirit_n to_o excite_v and_o draw_v it_o forth_o but_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a for_o infuse_a habit_n grace_n be_v call_v a_o good_a work_n in_o we_o phil._n 1._o 6._o the_o law_n write_v in_o our_o heart_n god_n be_v say_v to_o shine_v into_o our_o heart_n 2_o cor._n 4._o 6._o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 4._o see_v eph._n 2._o 10._o 1._o it_o be_v a_o sin_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o scripture_n how_o severe_o do_v god_n punish_v it_o in_o korah_n and_o his_o accomplice_n make_v the_o earth_n to_o gape_v wide_a and_o swallow_v they_o up_o solomon_n condemn_v it_o say_v meddle_v not_o with_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o change_v gal._n 5._o 20._o yea_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n as_o be_v evident_a 1._o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o law_n he_o that_o curse_a that_o be_v rail_v upon_o or_o use_v ill_a wish_n against_o the_o ruler_n of_o his_o people_n be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n how_o much_o more_o than_o he_o that_o shall_v rise_v up_o against_o he_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v full_a of_o precept_n for_o duty_n and_o subjection_n rom._n 13._o 1._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 13._o 14._o give_v unto_o caesar_n that_o which_o be_v caesar_n say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n give_v to_o every_o one_o his_o due_a fear_v to_o who_o fear_n honour_n to_o who_o honour_n belong_v you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_a for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o the_o apostle_n will_v titus_n to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o obey_v principality_n and_o power_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o magistrate_n and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a work_n as_o if_o a_o man_n be_v unfit_a for_o any_o good_a work_n if_o he_o be_v not_o due_o subject_a to_o authority_n the_o jesuit_n be_v still_o tamper_n about_o kingdom_n monarchy_n commonwealth_n and_o temporal_a state_n how_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o mutiny_n contention_n sedition_n rebellion_n and_o uproar_n watson_n quodlibet_n of_o religion_n and_o state_n quodl_n 5._o answer_v to_o the_o four_o article_n they_o be_v like_a unto_o aesop_n trumpeter_n who_o be_v take_v in_o war_n make_v his_o lamentation_n say_v that_o he_o never_o draw_v his_o sword_n against_o any_o nor_o shoot_v at_o any_o but_o the_o enemy_n answer_v thou_o have_v animate_v other_o thou_o have_v put_v courage_n rage_n and_o fury_n into_o all_o the_o rest_n saint_n peter_n and_o jude_n do_v blame_v they_o which_o despise_v government_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o in_o authority_n second_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n for_o even_o among_o those_o nation_n which_o never_o have_v any_o divine_a revelation_n yet_o the_o necessity_n of_o duty_n to_o magistrate_n be_v always_o maintain_v as_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o perceive_v absolute_o requisite_a for_o the_o welfare_n of_o humane_a society_n see_v without_o government_n the_o society_n of_o man_n can_v never_o continue_v in_o a_o good_a estate_n no_o man_n can_v possess_v his_o own_o good_n enjoy_v his_o own_o land_n and_o house_n live_v comfortable_o with_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o child_n or_o give_v himself_o to_o any_o profitable_a call_n and_o endeavour_n three_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o those_o principal_a virtue_n by_o which_o all_o man_n
in_o he_o and_o cry_v to_o he_o to_o be_v save_v from_o the_o guilt_n power_n punishment_n of_o their_o sin_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o therefore_o have_v he_o ascend_v and_o be_v glorify_v that_o he_o may_v become_v a_o perfect_a saviour_n to_o his_o church_n if_o he_o have_v not_o enter_v into_o glory_n by_o suffering_n we_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o benefit_n by_o his_o glorification_n but_o because_o he_o do_v in_o this_o manner_n convey_v himself_o to_o glory_n therefore_o be_v he_o become_v a_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o the_o author_n to_o the_o hebrew_n speak_v let_v we_o run_v to_o he_o in_o all_o our_o fear_n doubt_n temptation_n weakness_n for_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n tell_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v gift_n for_o man_n even_o gift_n to_o bestow_v upon_o man_n not_o to_o keep_v to_o himself_o alone_o but_o with_o a_o liberal_a hand_n to_o distribute_v unto_o man_n yea_o even_o to_o the_o rebellious_a that_o god_n may_v dwell_v among_o they_o cleave_v to_o christ_n rest_n on_o he_o stay_v upon_o he_o he_o shall_v lose_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o glory_n the_o subordinate_a use_n of_o his_o glory_n if_o he_o do_v not_o save_v they_o from_o who_o he_o do_v both_o so_o suffer_v and_o so_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n again_o let_v all_o the_o saint_n learn_v to_o adore_v admire_v honour_n love_n serve_v obey_v this_o one_o glorious_a person_n this_o surpass_a excellent_a person_n the_o mediator_n god_n and_o man_n even_o the_o man_n who_o god_n have_v so_o exalt_v let_v we_o see_v he_o by_o faith_n as_o they_o by_o sight_n see_v he_o in_o heaven_n that_o we_o may_v honour_v praise_n magnify_v and_o exalt_v he_o as_o they_o do_v and_o obey_v he_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o he_o in_o our_o measure_n as_o they_o i'faith_o faith_n must_v be_v our_o guide_n we_o see_v not_o christ_n with_o this_o mortal_a eye_n we_o must_v see_v he_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n i_o mean_v by_o a_o lively_a and_o full_a apprehension_n and_o persuasion_n of_o this_o his_o glorious_a be_v which_o the_o scripture_n do_v set_v forth_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o if_o we_o unfeigned_o and_o undoubted_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o the_o great_a glory_n whereunto_o he_o be_v enter_v will_v make_v we_o to_o glorify_v he_o high_o to_o esteem_v of_o he_o devout_o to_o worship_n to_o bow_v the_o knee_n of_o our_o soul_n always_o and_o of_o our_o body_n on_o fit_a season_n to_o he_o and_o to_o count_v it_o out_o happiness_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o a_o person_n so_o high_o advance_v by_o god_n this_o be_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o those_o immortal_a and_o bless_a spirit_n which_o be_v nigh_o unto_o he_o because_o their_o knowledge_n be_v more_o full_a and_o perfect_a too_o but_o the_o more_o we_o inform_v ourselves_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n the_o more_o shall_v our_o soul_n stoop_v to_o he_o and_o the_o more_o shall_v we_o esteem_v it_o not_o our_o duty_n alone_o but_o our_o felicity_n to_o be_v at_o his_o command_n god_n be_v ascend_v our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v ascend_v with_o the_o joyful_a voice_n of_o all_o saint_n and_o angel_n which_o with_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a music_n entertain_v he_o there_o they_o sing_v all_o honour_n be_v unto_o the_o lamb_n let_v our_o soul_n sing_v for_o ever_o let_v we_o cast_v ourselves_o down_o before_o he_o let_v we_o exalt_v his_o great_a and_o glorious_a name_n let_v our_o heart_n tongue_n and_o life_n confess_v to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n to_o who_o all_o glory_n be_v to_o be_v give_v that_o by_o glorify_v he_o we_o may_v glorify_v the_o father_n that_o send_v he_o for_o he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n do_v not_o neither_o honour_n the_o father_n christ_n glorify_v have_v not_o lay_v down_o any_o of_o his_o office_n ascend_v first_o because_o certain_a act_n of_o office_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o heaven_n john_n 14._o 2._o second_o christ_n have_v not_o yet_o give_v up_o his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o father_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 24._o three_o it_o appear_v by_o enumeration_n of_o the_o several_a act_n that_o christ_n perform_v as_o mediator_n in_o heaven_n in_o reference_n to_o each_o of_o his_o office_n i._o to_o his_o prophetical_a so_o 1._o he_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n furnish_v they_o with_o ability_n for_o the_o church_n service_n ephes._n 4._o 11_o 12._o 2._o he_o send_v they_o forth_o and_o will_v uphold_v they_o rev._n 1._o 16._o the_o witness_n shall_v prophesy_v till_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n 3._o he_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o truth_n teach_v ezek_n 40._o 3._o his_o business_n be_v to_o resine_fw-la doctrine_n 4._o he_o concur_v with_o his_o messenger_n in_o their_o ministry_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 12._o &_o 31._o 2._o isa._n 57_o 18._o heb._n 12._o 24_o 25._o 5._o when_o ungodly_a man_n prevail_v against_o any_o the_o lord_n raise_v up_o other_o in_o their_o spirit_n and_o power_n ii_o to_o his_o priestly_a office_n so_o 1._o as_o a_o public_a person_n he_o represent_v your_o person_n heb._n 9_o 24._o see_v exod._n 28._o 12_o 29._o by_o this_o mean_v you_o be_v make_v accept_v ephes._n 1._o 6._o 2._o you_o have_v a_o memorial_n psal._n 112._o 6._o god_n be_v always_o mindful_a of_o you_o 2._o the_o highpriest_n be_v to_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n before_o the_o mercy-seat_n levit._n 16._o 15._o christ_n offer_v there_o the_o price_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n whereby_o you_o obtain_v mercy_n and_o have_v it_o continue_v for_o the_o blood_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n to_o abide_v always_o before_o the_o lord_n 3._o he_o have_v take_v possession_n for_o you_o as_o your_o priest_n this_o give_v actual_a right_n as_o the_o price_n pay_v a_o meritorious_a right_n 4._o he_o be_v careful_a to_o receive_v your_o service_n levit._fw-la 1._o 1_o 2._o to_o sanctify_v they_o exod._n 28._o 3._o revel_v 8._o 3_o 4._o and_o to_o offer_v they_o to_o his_o father_n the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n iii_o to_o his_o kingly_a office_n mat._n 28._o 18._o eph._n 1._o 21_o 22._o 1._o in_o his_o present_a dispensation_n 1._o in_o protect_v his_o people_n from_o danger_n isa._n 4._o 5._o mic._n 5._o 5._o 2._o in_o preserve_v his_o truth_n and_o ordinance_n rev._n 14._o 1_o 2._o 3._o by_o confound_v his_o enemy_n 2._o in_o his_o preparation_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v 1._o he_o prepare_v grace_n for_o his_o people_n col._n 3._o 3._o 1_o joh._n 5._o 11._o 2._o prepare_v prayer_n for_o they_o luk._n 21._o 31_o 32._o 3._o prepare_v glory_n for_o they_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 9_o joh._n 14._o 2._o god_n people_n shall_v exercise_v faith_n on_o christ_n as_o glorify_v and_o in_o office_n in_o heaven_n 1._o a_o act_n of_o persuasion_n that_o he_o take_v care_n of_o they_o still_o 2._o of_o reliance_n for_o thyself_o and_o the_o church_n 1_o joh._n 2._o 1._o psal._n 55._o 22._o 3._o look_v upon_o none_o but_o christ_n prov._n 3._o 5._o 4._o quiet_v thy_o soul_n in_o trouble_n psal._n 127._o 2._o 5._o triumph_n over_o danger_n the_o end_n of_o the_o five_o book_n the_o six_z book_n of_o the_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n the_o great_a enemy_n of_o christ_n have_v handle_v the_o work_n of_o redemption_n in_o the_o nature_n and_o person_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v now_o speak_v of_o the_o application_n of_o it_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o because_o many_o divine_n do_v treat_v of_o the_o church_n after_o christ_n i_o shall_v follow_v that_o method_n and_o likewise_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o that_o great_a adversary_n of_o christ_n before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o application_n of_o christ._n chap._n i._o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o principal_a matter_n require_v of_o our_o part_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v to_o believe_v thing_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o church_n god_n be_v the_o first_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v reveal_v in_o his_o nature_n property_n and_o work_n malè_fw-la vivitur_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la non_fw-la benè_fw-la creditur_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 10._o after_o article_n concern_v the_o several_a person_n in_o the_o trinity_n follow_v this_o i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n this_o be_v add_v to_o the_o former_a say_v august_n enchirid._n cap._n 56._o upon_o special_a consideration_n for_o the_o right_a order_n of_o a_o confession_n do_v require_v that_o after_o the_o trinity_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v mention_v as_o the_o house_n after_o the_o owner_n the_o temple_n after_o god_n and_o the_o city_n after_o the_o builder_n and_o he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n which_o
have_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n 1._o the_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o these_o word_n tacit_o imply_v i_o believe_v 2._o the_o object_n of_o this_o faith_n the_o church_n describe_v by_o two_o property_n viâ_n 1._o sanctity_n in_o that_o it_o be_v call_v holy_a 2._o universality_n in_o that_o it_o be_v style_v catholic_n concern_v the_o act_n of_o this_o faith_n i_o believe_v though_o it_o be_v not_o prefix_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o article_n as_o neither_o to_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o former_a i_o believe_v which_o precede_v the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n communicate_v itself_o to_o this_o and_o the_o subsequent_a and_o that_o chief_o for_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o principal_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v god_n himself_o consider_v in_o unity_n of_o essence_n and_o trinity_n of_o person_n and_o therefore_o to_o each_o of_o the_o person_n there_o be_v either_o a_o believe_v prefix_v or_o the_o particle_n in_o set_v before_o to_o show_v that_o on_o they_o we_o be_v to_o build_v the_o certainty_n and_o assurance_n of_o our_o hope_n but_o as_o for_o these_o article_n of_o the_o church_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o 2._o body_n and_o the_o like_a they_o be_v creature_n be_v but_o the_o secondary_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n not_o to_o be_v trust_v upon_o immediate_o in_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o a_o credo_fw-la a_o believe_v apart_o to_o themselves_o but_o prefix_v to_o one_o of_o the_o person_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o other_o to_o set_v out_o and_o divide_v by_o this_o mean_n unto_o every_o of_o the_o person_n a_o special_a work_n creation_n to_o the_o father_n redemption_n to_o the_o son_n sanctification_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n question_n be_v make_v what_o the_o word_n be_v which_o be_v to_o be_v supply_v in_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n whether_o i_o believe_v or_o i_o believe_v in_o i_o believe_v as_o be_v general_o dei_fw-la determine_v by_o the_o orthodox_n kahal_n in_o hebrew_a ordinary_o translate_v ecclesia_fw-la sometime_o synagoga_fw-la be_v take_v for_o a_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n and_o that_o sometime_o in_o the_o evil_a part_n for_o a_o assembly_n of_o wicked_a man_n as_o gen._n 49._o 6._o psal._n 2d_o 5._o sometime_o in_o the_o good_a sense_n for_o a_o assembly_n of_o man_n gather_v together_o for_o a_o holy_a or_o civil_a use_n or_o end_n nehem._n 5._o 13._o 1_o sam._n 17._o 47._o 1_o chron._n 13._o 2._o deut._n 23._o 1_o 2_o 3._o psal._n 8._o 22_o 23._o gnedah_n or_o hedah_n ordinary_o translate_v synagoga_fw-la do_v also_o signify_v a_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n gather_v at_o set_a hour_n and_o place_n appoint_v sometime_o it_o note_v a_o rebellious_a tumultuous_a and_o evil_a assembly_n psal._n 106._o 17_o 18._o numb_a 16._o 48._o and_o sometime_o a_o orderly_a and_o lawful_a congregation_n as_o psal._n 1._o 5._o jer._n 30._o 20._o exod._n 12._o 19_o 47._o gnedah_n signify_v something_o more_o noble_a than_o kahal_n as_o be_v the_o special_a ecclesia_fw-la in_o profane_a author_n signify_v a_o assembly_n of_o citizen_n which_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o crier_n be_v call_v from_o their_o domestic_a affair_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o multitude_n to_o hear_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o senate_n so_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o concio_fw-la which_o be_v derive_v 2._o à _fw-la ciendo_fw-la because_o all_o be_v call_v by_o public_a edict_n into_o the_o assembly_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v once_o take_v for_o a_o disorderly_a and_o confuse_a assembly_n act._n 19_o 32_o 39_o 40._o but_o that_o one_o place_n except_v it_o be_v ever_o take_v for_o a_o multitude_n or_o society_n with_o a_o disposition_n or_o relation_n to_o religion_n and_o so_o it_o note_n 1._o the_o company_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a mat._n 16._o 18._o ephes._n 1._o 21_o 22._o &_o 4._o 16._o &_o ecclesia_fw-la 5._o 25_o 26._o col._n 1._o 18_o 24._o ephes._n 5._o 27_o 32._o it_o be_v also_o take_v indefinite_o for_o every_o multitude_n and_o society_n of_o believer_n in_o christ_n act._n 2._o 47._o gal._n 1._o 13._o 1_o cor._n 15._o 9_o &_o 12._o 20._o act._n 5._o 11._o &_o 8._o 1._o 2._o more_o particular_o it_o signify_v any_o assembly_n gather_v together_o for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n act._n 9_o 31._o &_o 14._o 23._o 1_o cor._n 11._o 16._o the_o church_n in_o its_o primary_n signification_n may_v be_v define_v a_o multitude_n or_o society_n of_o aeternam_fw-la faithful_a man_n call_v out_o of_o all_o mankind_n corrupt_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n unite_v as_o live_a member_n to_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o in_o he_o partake_v of_o grace_n in_o this_o life_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n wisdom_n power_n and_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o multitude_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o and_o that_o out_o of_o every_o nation_n language_n tribe_n and_o people_n apoc._n 5._o 9_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n not_o of_o angel_n heb._n 12._o 22._o see_v ephes._n 3._o 10._o l'empereur_n in_o his_o thesis_n say_v if_o the_o word_n church_n be_v general_o take_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o angel_n also_o belong_v to_o it_o for_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 1._o 23._o but_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n not_o only_o of_o man_n but_o also_o of_o angel_n col._n 2._o 10_o 18_o 19_o they_o be_v our_o fellow-servant_n revel_v 19_o 10._o and_o fellow-brethren_n job_n 1._o 6._o by_o christ_n ephes._n 3._o 15._o 3._o a_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a call_v effectual_o and_o save_o out_o of_o the_o world_n or_o mankind_n corrupt_v by_o the_o gospel_n the_o church_n be_v either_o jewish_a or_o christian_a the_o christian_a either_o primitive_a or_o successive_a and_o they_o again_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n be_v pure_a or_o impure_a in_o respect_n of_o worship_n sound_v or_o idololatrical_a in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n orthodox_n or_o heretical_a in_o respect_n of_o mutual_a communion_n catholic_n or_o schismatical_a there_o be_v divers_a and_o glorious_a eulogy_n of_o this_o church_n visible_a in_o the_o scripture_n it_o 2._o be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o god_n heb._n 12._o 22._o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n there_o also_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v from_o above_o gal._n 4._o 26._o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o christ_n sheepfold_n john_n 10._o 16._o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n cant._n 4._o 8._o 2_o cor._n 11._o 2._o revel_v 21._o 9_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1._o 22_o 23._o col._n 1._o 18._o the_o church_n be_v triumphant_a or_o comprehensorum_fw-la and_o militant_a or_o viatorum_fw-la 1._o triumphant_a viz._n that_o part_n of_o man_n who_o have_v overcome_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n now_o reign_v with_o god_n and_o christ_n glorious_o in_o heaven_n 2._o militant_a viz._n that_o part_n of_o man_n which_o yet_o conflict_n with_o those_o adversaty_n that_o distinction_n rely_v on_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n ephes._n 3._o 15._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n 2_o tim._n 4._o â6_n 7._o heb._n 12._o 23._o revel_v 7._o 9_o hence_o their_o error_n be_v refute_v who_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a do_v sleep_v even_o to_o the_o resurrection_n or_o who_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o faithful_a till_o that_o time_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n and_o heavenly_a glory_n see_v 2_o cor._n 5._o 6_o 7_o 8._o phil._n 1._o 23._o revel_v 14._o 13._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o militant_a church_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 12._o that_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o one_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o gal._n 5._o 17._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 11._o 1_o john_n 5._o 4._o ephes._n 6._o 11_o 12._o the_o church_n be_v militant_a either_o in_o deed_n or_o in_o show_v only_o and_o profession_n those_o indeed_o belong_v to_o the_o militant_a church_n which_o be_v call_v according_a to_o purpose_n viz._n the_o true_o faithful_a and_o elect_a those_o be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o by_o faith_n be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o ingraff_v in_o he_o who_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o draw_v grace_n and_o spiritual_a life_n from_o christ_n rom._n 8._o 9_o col._n 2._o 19_o ephes._n 5._o 25_o 26_o 27._o but_o the_o wicked_a and_o hypocrite_n only_o in_o name_n and_o profession_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n for_o they_o have_v no_o true_a communion_n with_o christ_n they_o no_o more_o belong_v to_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n than_o a_o
wooden_a thigh_n or_o dry_a arm_n to_o the_o body_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n for_o they_o want_v life_n sense_n and_o motion_n and_o receive_v no_o influence_n from_o the_o head_n they_o be_v as_o be_v common_o say_v in_o the_o church_n not_o of_o the_o church_n 1_o john_n 2._o 19_o hence_o arise_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o church_n into_o visible_a and_o ecclesiae_fw-la invisible_a the_o invisible_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o those_o who_o be_v endue_v with_o true_a faith_n and_o holiness_n but_o these_o be_v know_v to_o god_n and_o christ_n alone_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 19_o john_n 10._o 14._o therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o that_o church_n which_o alone_o true_o and_o proper_o be_v the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v call_v invisible_a the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n not_o as_o man_n for_o so_o a_o number_n of_o turk_n or_o a_o nest_n of_o arian_n may_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o believer_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n can_v be_v see_v but_o believe_v bellarmine_n himself_o say_v videmus_fw-la coetum_fw-la hominum_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la coetus_fw-la sit_fw-la vera_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la videmus_fw-la sed_fw-la credimus_fw-la and_o what_o say_v we_o more_o that_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n which_o consist_v of_o man_n profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n any_o way_n whether_o in_o truth_n or_o counterfeit_o and_o false_o of_o good_a and_o evil_n of_o elect_a and_o reprobate_a this_o church_n be_v mix_v whence_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o great_a house_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o only_a vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o also_o wood_n and_o clay_n some_o for_o honour_n some_o for_o reproach_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 20._o to_o a_o field_n in_o which_o there_o be_v tare_n as_o well_o as_o wheat_n matth._n 13._o to_o a_o net_n in_o which_o fish_n of_o all_o kind_n good_a and_o bad_a be_v gather_v see_v dr_n featley_n against_o fisher_n about_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n jackson_n rage_v tempest_n on_o matth._n 8._o 23._o p._n 25._o dr_n tailor_n on_o rev._n 12._o p._n 294._o mr_n baxter_n infant_n church-membership_a pag._n 176._o par._n on_o rom._n 11._o vers_fw-la 4._o pag._n 160_o 161._o again_o the_o church_n be_v either_o particular_a viz._n a_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o 19_o be_v contain_v in_o some_o particular_a place_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 1._o &_o 1_o cor._n 16._o 19_o col._n 4._o 15._o or_o universal_a catholic_n which_o consist_v of_o all_o that_o every_o where_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 2._o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o general_a assembly_n heb._n 12._o 23._o it_o be_v general_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o time_n common_a it_o have_v a_o be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n ever_o since_o the_o give_n of_o the_o promise_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n of_o man_n it_o consist_v of_o all_o sort_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n act._n 16._o 34._o 3._o in_o respect_n of_o place_n because_o it_o have_v be_v gather_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n special_o now_o in_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n revel_v 5._o 9_o 4._o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n therein_o profess_v this_o name_n catholic_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o church_n in_o scripture_n but_o be_v impose_v by_o man_n yet_o consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n be_v first_o entitle_v catholic_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o symbolis_fw-la the_o jew_n act._n 10._o 15_o 34._o the_o full_a importance_n of_o this_o term_n catholic_n be_v set_v down_o revel_v 5._o 8_o 9_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v call_v holy_a 1_o cor._n 14._o 33._o &_o revel_v 11._o 2._o because_o 1._o christ_n the_o head_n of_o it_o be_v holy_a heb._n 7._o 26._o and_o he_o make_v the_o church_n partaker_n of_o his_o holiness_n john_n 17._o 19_o because_o it_o be_v call_v with_o a_o holy_a call_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o world_n 2_o tim._n 1._o 9_o because_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v to_o it_o rom._n 3._o 2._o object_n but_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o contain_v in_o it_o those_o that_o be_v holy_a but_o also_o hypocrite_n and_o such_o as_o be_v open_o wicked_a how_o therefore_o be_v it_o holy_a answ._n hypocrite_n and_o profane_a person_n be_v but_o in_o name_n and_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o church_n indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v not_o those_o which_o be_v true_o of_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a and_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v right_o call_v and_o be_v holy_a 2._o although_o the_o visible_a have_v good_a mingle_v with_o evil_a yea_o almost_o overwhelm_v with_o their_o multitude_n yet_o it_o be_v deserve_o denominate_v from_o the_o better_a part_n as_o we_o call_v that_o a_o heap_n of_o corn_n where_o there_o be_v more_o chaff_n than_o corn_n it_o be_v the_o privilege_n as_o well_o as_o duty_n of_o god_n people_n to_o be_v holy_a deut._n 26._o 18._o &_o 28._o 9_o it_o come_v in_o by_o way_n of_o promise_n reward_n privilege_n revel_v 20._o 6._o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v take_v from_o the_o cause_n the_o nature_n and_o effect_n of_o holiness_n first_o from_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o it_o flow_v from_o union_n with_o god_n john_n 17._o 17_o 21._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 4._o &_o 4._o 14._o second_o the_o nature_n of_o holiness_n consist_v in_o a_o likeness_n and_o conformity_n to_o god_n be_v you_o holy_a as_o i_o be_o holy_a levit._n 26._o 44_o 45._o there_o be_v a_o fourfold_a holiness_n 1._o of_o dedication_n so_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o tabernacle_n be_v holy_a 2._o of_o exemplification_n so_o the_o law_n be_v the_o epistle_n or_o exemplification_n of_o god_n will_n be_v holy_a rom._n 7._o 12._o 3._o by_o profession_n as_o 1_o cor._n 7._o 14._o 4._o by_o participation_n or_o communion_n the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a all_o these_o way_n 1._o they_o be_v dedicate_v to_o god_n rom._n 1._o 1._o 2._o by_o exemplification_n they_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n 3._o by_o profession_n 4._o by_o participation_n three_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o effect_n of_o holiness_n 1._o upon_o ourselves_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o our_o election_n ephes._n 1._o 14._o of_o our_o vocation_n 1_o thess._n 4._o 17._o redemption_n luke_n 1._o 74._o 2._o upon_o other_o even_o the_o enemy_n of_o it_o wicked_a man_n 1._o affectation_n the_o hypocrite_n affect_v it_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o pretender_n to_o it_o though_o but_o in_o show_n discover_v the_o dignity_n of_o it_o 2._o that_o awfulnesse_n which_o it_o strike_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o wicked_a man_n saul_n stand_v in_o awe_n of_o samuel_n herod_n of_o john_n baptist_n mark_v 6._o 20._o 3._o envy_n it_o work_v this_o in_o the_o worst_a 1_o john_n 3._o 17._o quest._n whether_o every_o one_o which_o sincere_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o true_a lively_a member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n answ._n no_o all_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v actual_a or_o real_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o none_o can_v true_o believe_v thus_o much_o of_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o have_v make_v his_o election_n sure_a and_o be_v certain_a that_o his_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n a_o note_n mark_v or_o character_n be_v that_o whereby_o one_o thing_n may_v be_v know_v and_o difference_v from_o another_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o thing_n and_o peculiar_o find_v in_o it_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o note_n or_o mark_v of_o distinction_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o entire_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o save_a truth_n of_o god_n the_o right_a use_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la the_o sacrament_n holiness_n of_o conversation_n the_o sound_n preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n servant_n and_o pure_a call_n upon_o god_n name_n subjection_n to_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n mutual_a communion_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o worship_n christian_a fellowship_n with_o all_o saint_n and_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ._n all_o these_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o church_n but_o not_o perpetual_o to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o noâ_n alike_o pure_a in_o all_o age_n where_o all_o these_o note_n be_v to_o be_v find_v pure_o the_o church_n be_v excellent_a for_o degree_n pure_a and_o famous_a where_o any_o of_o these_o be_v want_v or_o impure_a the_o church_n be_v so_o much_o defective_a or_o impure_a though_o it_o may_v be_v pure_a in_o comparison_n of_o other_o but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o equal_a necessity_n to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o
true_a church_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o word_n and_o so_o the_o preach_n of_o it_o in_o some_o sense_n or_o other_o be_v simple_o necessary_a that_o wheresoever_o it_o be_v it_o make_v the_o church_n in_o which_o it_o be_v a_o church_n to_o they_o who_o demand_v where_o our_o church_n and_o faith_n be_v before_o luther_n we_o answer_v 6._o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n then_o wherein_o now_o it_o be_v our_o church_n be_v in_o the_o present_a romish_a church_n obscure_o indistinct_o confuse_o in_o it_o not_o as_o a_o entire_a visible_a church_n distinct_a from_o it_o nor_o as_o any_o natural_a or_o integral_a member_n of_o it_o in_o it_o as_o good_a corn_n in_o a_o field_n of_o tare_n luther_n do_v not_o erect_v a_o new_a church_n but_o refine_v a_o corrupt_a church_n nor_o preach_v a_o new_a faith_n or_o doctrine_n never_o preach_v before_o but_o purge_v the_o old_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n from_o all_o new_a invention_n and_o error_n rome_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o have_v not_o first_o and_o willing_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o have_v apostatise_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n she_o do_v once_o profess_v the_o question_n may_v fit_o be_v retort_v on_o themselves_o where_o be_v your_o church_n rome_n where_o be_v your_o trent_n doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a creed_n receive_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la before_o luther_n first_o in_o regard_n of_o true_a doctrine_n what_o heresy_n do_v she_o hold_v about_o the_o scripture_n 6._o about_o the_o church_n about_o grace_n freewill_n justification_n second_o in_o regard_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v the_o apostasy_n or_o fall_v away_o speak_v of_o by_o paul_n to_o timothy_n a_o admit_v of_o angel-worship_n three_o in_o regard_n of_o government_n or_o discipline_n her_o error_n be_v now_o so_o fundamental_a that_o we_o be_v command_v to_o come_v out_o of_o she_o and_o not_o to_o partake_v of_o her_o sin_n and_o we_o depart_v no_o far_o from_o she_o than_o she_o have_v do_v from_o god_n their_o apostasy_n 529._o be_v incurable_a in_o that_o they_o hold_v 1._o that_o their_o church_n can_v err_v as_o laodicea_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a judge_n to_o correct_v error_n but_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o england_n scotland_n france_n germany_n do_v just_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n cast_v off_o all_o christian_n and_o church_n from_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n who_o subject_n not_o themselves_o to_o their_o way_n therefore_o they_o be_v most_o schismatical_a causa_fw-la non_fw-la secessio_fw-la facit_fw-la schismaticum_fw-la the_o cause_n say_v the_o canonist_n not_o the_o separation_n 2._o make_v a_o schismatic_n they_o who_o have_v give_v just_a and_o lawful_a occasion_n to_o other_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o their_o corruption_n be_v the_o schismatics_n and_o not_o they_o that_o take_v the_o occasion_n he_o be_v well_o no_o schismatic_n though_o in_o schism_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n when_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o to_o he_o as_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n though_o he_o hold_v heretical_a opinion_n who_o hold_v they_o not_o obstinate_o that_o be_v i_o suppose_v with_o desire_n to_o be_v inform_v if_o he_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n my_o lord_n falkland_n discourse_n of_o infallibility_n for_o the_o papist_n several_a mark_n of_o a_o church_n our_o writer_n that_o oppose_v bellarmine_n do_v answer_v he_o so_o full_o and_o dr_n hampton_n so_o solid_o in_o a_o sermon_n of_o he_o on_o 1_o john_n 2._o 19_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n that_o i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o of_o it_o see_v dr_n tailor_n on_o rev._n 12._o p._n 99_o to_o 110._o those_o note_n of_o succession_n continuance_n visibility_n unity_n be_v not_o proper_a agree_v only_o and_o always_o to_o the_o church_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a and_o infallible_a bellarmin_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 3._o make_v they_o in_o themselves_o to_o be_v but_o probable_a it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o ecclesia_fw-la visibilis_fw-la possit_fw-la errare_fw-la whether_o the_o visible_a church_n 1._o may_v err_v the_o papist_n deny_v it_o and_o urge_v matth._n 18._o 17._o &_o matth._n 16._o 18._o &_o 1_o tiâ_n 3._o 15._o see_v the_o rhemist_n on_o that_o place_n the_o invisible_a church_n which_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a and_o true_a believer_n can_v err_v damnable_o matth._n 16._o 16._o the_o visible_a church_n whether_o virtual_a the_o pope_n or_o representative_a a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v damnable_o see_v revel_n 2._o and_o 3._o chap._n if_o particular_a man_n may_v err_v than_o also_o the_o church_n which_o consist_v of_o such_o but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a 1_o cor._n 13._o 9_o psal._n 25._o 7._o heb._n 5._o â_o rom._n 3._o 4._o second_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a church_n that_o this_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n and_o error_n but_o that_o be_v not_o for_o it_o pray_v continual_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v incurable_a 1._o because_o she_o hold_v she_o can_v err_v 2._o if_o she_o shall_v only_o herself_o and_o the_o pope_n must_v reform_v she_o chap._n ii_o of_o pastor_n 1._o their_o name_n in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n he_o be_v call_v a_o man_n of_o god_n he_o be_v 20._o call_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n also_o a_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n a_o seer_n a_o prophet_n a_o priest_n a_o watchman_z and_o a_o shepherd_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o be_v call_v prophet_n minister_n of_o god_n pastor_n teacher_n elder_n god_n steward_n titus_n 1._o 7._o god_n ambassador_n rev._n 1._o 13._o angel_n revel_v 1._o 2_o 3._o apostle_n evangelist_n that_o man_n may_v regard_v they_o and_o they_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n he_o be_v to_o be_v of_o some_o year_n before_o he_o enter_v into_o that_o function_n our_o saviour_n be_v thirty_o year_n before_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n luk._n 3._o 23._o see_v numb_a 4._o 3._o 3_o basil_n and_o gregory_n say_v russinus_n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o spend_v thirteen_o year_n in_o search_v forth_o the_o hide_a sense_n of_o scripture_n bare_o before_o they_o will_v make_v show_n of_o their_o profession_n there_o be_v a_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n institute_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ministrorum_fw-la new_a testament_n first_o the_o lord_n have_v express_o institute_v such_o a_o office_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o ephes._n 4._o 11._o this_o be_v one_o of_o his_o royal_a gift_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o inauguration_n the_o socinian_o say_v cum_fw-la adhuc_fw-la nova_fw-la &_o inaudita_fw-la esset_fw-la evangelii_n doctrina_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n have_v a_o call_v when_o the_o gospel_n be_v new_o publish_v there_o need_v not_o a_o ministry_n now_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v general_o teach_v and_o it_o be_v promise_v we_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n if_o we_o shall_v look_v for_o a_o ministry_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v it_o our_o minister_n be_v ordain_v by_o bishop_n they_o by_o the_o pope_n therefore_o their_o call_v be_v antichristian_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o to_o continue_v till_o the_o world_n end_n may_v be_v thus_o prove_v decim_fw-la first_o there_o be_v some_o to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n be_v commit_v and_o not_o to_o other_o 1_o cor._n 5._o 18._o ram._n 10._o 15._o there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a mission_n man_n can_v preach_v as_o the_o ambassador_n of_o christ_n unless_o send_v joh._n 20._o 21._o gal._n 1._o 1._o second_o because_o a_o special_a authority_n be_v commit_v to_o such_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o office_n they_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n isa._n 22._o 22._o matth._n 16._o 19_o there_o be_v a_o double_a power_n 1._o supreme_a which_o belong_v to_o christ_n only_o revel_v 3._o 7._o 2._o subordinate_a and_o delegated_a minister_n be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o christ_n himself_o we_o beseech_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o three_o there_o be_v a_o special_a trial_n that_o in_o order_n to_o such_o a_o employment_n they_o be_v to_o undergo_v 1_o tim._n 3._o 10._o there_o be_v a_o trial_n require_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o mean_a office_n the_o deacon_n four_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v they_o a_o reward_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o such_o in_o office_n he_o have_v ordain_v that_o those_o which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v of_o the_o gospel_n see_v act._n 6._o 24._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 15._o five_o they_o be_v to_o give_v a_o special_a account_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o
other_o say_v the_o minister_n original_o receive_v their_o church-office_n not_o from_o the_o people_n but_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n of_o a_o natural_a and_o voluntary_a action_n 6._o there_o be_v a_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n or_o the_o minister_n be_v first_o because_o the_o minister_n be_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o minister_n which_o be_v something_o like_o the_o philosopher_n question_n whether_o the_o egg_n or_o the_o hen_n be_v first_o for_o as_o the_o egg_n come_v of_o a_o hen_n so_o the_o hen_n come_v of_o a_o egg_n and_o as_o that_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o creation_n than_o god_n make_v the_o hen_n first_o so_o be_v this_o question_n by_o consideration_n of_o the_o first_o institution_n and_o set_v up_o of_o the_o evangelical_n catholic_n church_n than_o we_o find_v that_o christ_n set_v up_o the_o officer_n first_o to_o convert_v man_n to_o be_v believer_n and_o they_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o christ_n minister_n in_o the_o lord_n if_o a_o minister_n of_o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n visible_a than_o he_o be_v no_o minister_n out_o of_o his_o own_o congregation_n and_o therefore_o can_v preach_v or_o administer_v any_o sacrament_n as_o a_o minister_n out_o of_o his_o own_o congregation_n yea_o if_o any_o member_n of_o another_o congregation_n shall_v come_v and_o hear_v a_o minister_n preach_v in_o his_o own_o congregation_n he_o can_v not_o preach_v to_o they_o nor_o they_o hear_v he_o as_o a_o minister_n but_o only_o as_o a_o gift_a brother_n they_o of_o the_o separation_n and_o if_o not_o all_o yet_o sure_a some_o independent_o place_v the_o there_o whole_a essentiality_n of_o a_o minister_n call_v in_o election_n account_v ordination_n to_o be_v no_o more_o but_o the_o solemnisation_n of_o the_o call_v we_o say_v permissio_fw-la potestativa_fw-la or_o the_o power_n and_o commission_n give_v to_o a_o man_n by_o which_o he_o be_v make_v of_o no_o minister_n to_o be_v a_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o the_o church_n elect_v he_o but_o from_o the_o lawful_a ordain_v he_o election_n do_v but_o design_n such_o a_o person_n to_o the_o ministry_n of_o such_o a_o church_n in_o scripture_n we_o find_v election_n and_o ordination_n frequent_o distinguish_v not_o only_o 3._o as_o distinct_a act_n but_o oft_o time_n in_o distinct_a hand_n deut._n 1._o 13._o the_o people_n choose_v they_o who_o shall_v be_v ruler_n but_o moses_n make_v they_o ruler_n act._n 6._o 3._o the_o people_n choose_v the_o apostle_n appoint_v the_o deacon_n the_o choose_n of_o a_o person_n to_o a_o office_n be_v not_o the_o authorise_a of_o the_o person_n elect_v but_o the_o designation_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v authorize_v ordination_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o election_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v choose_v but_o not_o ordain_v ordination_n be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a act_n of_o government_n but_o election_n be_v not_o so_o some_o say_v the_o bishop_n only_o be_v to_o ordain_v heb._n 7._o 7._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o tit._n 1._o 5._o jerom_n say_v excepta_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la what_o be_v it_o that_o a_o bishop_n do_v which_o a_o presbyter_n may_v not_o dâ_n or_o at_o lest_o no_o ordination_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o bishop_n other_o say_v it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o presbyter_n it_o be_v in_o the_o directory_n describe_v to_o be_v evang._n a_o outward_a solemn_a set_v apart_o of_o person_n for_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n by_o preach_v presbyter_n numb_a 8._o 10_o 11_o 14_o 19_o 22._o act._n 6._o 3_o 5_o 6._o it_o be_v the_o set_n of_o man_n apart_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o commend_v of_o they_o with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o authorise_a of_o they_o 102._o to_o perform_v thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n which_o other_o neither_o may_v nor_o can_v do_v wherein_o the_o ceremony_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v use_v 1._o to_o express_v the_o set_n of_o they_o apart_o for_o sacred_a employment_n 2._o to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v with_o they_o in_o all_o that_o they_o do_v in_o his_o name_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n to_o guide_v strengthen_v and_o protect_v they_o 3._o to_o note_v out_o the_o person_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n by_o her_o prayer_n desire_v the_o blessing_n of_o almighty_a god_n to_o be_v pour_v in_o more_o plentiful_a sort_n then_o upon_o other_o as_o be_v to_o take_v charge_n of_o other_o the_o socinian_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v fit_a for_o order_n and_o decency_n to_o retain_v ordination_n in_o the_o church_n peradventure_o many_o of_o the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n will_v hardly_o acknowledge_v thus_o much_o the_o papist_n ordination_n fail_v divers_a way_n 1._o in_o the_o end_n for_o the_o bishop_n bid_v they_o take_v power_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n body_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n 2._o they_o want_v the_o institution_n for_o christ_n have_v appoint_v no_o priest_n in_o his_o church_n to_o sacrifice_v 3._o they_o fail_v in_o the_o outward_a form_n for_o they_o have_v many_o foolish_a ceremony_n add_v to_o their_o consecration_n the_o brownist_n 579._o fail_v in_o the_o main_a which_o be_v the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o the_o presbytery_n some_o think_v that_o the_o ceremony_n of_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n may_v be_v omit_v sometime_o 2._o we_o must_v be_v tie_v to_o example_n in_o the_o least_o gesture_n though_o not_o prescribe_v &_o yet_o man_n presume_v to_o dispense_v in_o a_o circumstance_n express_o prescribe_v tit._n 1._o 5._o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n &_o enjoin_v to_o lay_v hand_n on_o other_o in_o their_o ordination_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 22_o thus_o be_v the_o deacon_n ordain_v act._n 6._o 6._o and_o thus_o be_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n set_v apart_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o call_n act._n 13._o 3._o their_o duty_n it_o be_v lay_v forth_o 1._o by_o title_n as_o watchman_n ezek._n 3._o 17._o &_o 33._o 7._o labourer_n matth._n 9_o 37._o light_a and_o salt_n matth._n 5._o 13_o 14._o shepherd_n john_n 21._o 15._o good_a scribe_n matth._n 13._o steward_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 1._o nurse_n 1_o thess._n 2._o 7._o 2._o in_o commandment_n act._n 20._o 28._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 1_o 2._o he_o must_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2_o tim._n 2._o 15._o and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d gal._n 2._o 14._o he_o must_v teach_v and_o tread_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n he_o must_v feed_v the_o flock_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 2._o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n 2_o and_o sacrament_n and_o by_o pray_v for_o they_o both_o public_o 23._o and_o private_o minister_n must_v teach_v sound_a and_o true_a doctrine_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 9_o &_o 4._o 6_o 7._o they_o must_v preach_v 1._o zealous_o john_n 5._o 35._o 2._o compassionate_o matth._n 9_o 36._o &_o 23._o 27._o 3._o convince_o col._n 2._o 2._o 4._o feel_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o best_a way_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o heart_n be_v to_o speak_v from_o the_o heart_n 2_o cor._n 2._o 4._o 5._o frequent_o officium_fw-la in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n luk._n 21._o 37_o act._n 5._o 42._o 6._o grave_o 2_o cor._n 5._o tit._n 2._o 8._o homily_n be_v first_o allow_v in_o the_o church_n not_o to_o uphold_v or_o maintain_v a_o ignorant_a ministry_n or_o to_o supply_v his_o defect_n that_o shall_v take_v pain_n but_o will_v not_o much_o less_o to_o shut_v out_o preach_v but_o to_o supply_v the_o casual_a defect_n of_o preach_v through_o the_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n of_o the_o minister_n bishop_n andrews_n cause_v to_o be_v engrave_v about_o the_o seal_n of_o his_o bishopric_n those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n bishop_n jewel_n be_v very_o weak_a as_o he_o be_v go_v to_o preach_v at_o lacock_n in_o wiltshire_n 19_o a_o gentleman_n meet_v he_o friendly_o admonish_v he_o to_o return_v home_o for_o his_o health_n sake_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v better_a that_o the_o people_n shall_v want_v one_o sermon_n than_o be_v altogether_o deprive_v of_o such_o a_o preacher_n to_o which_o he_o reply_v oportet_fw-la episcopum_fw-la concionantem_fw-la mori_fw-la a_o bishop_n shall_v die_v preach_v in_o a_o pulpit_n that_o be_v the_o last_o sermon_n he_o preach_v it_o be_v one_o part_n of_o a_o minister_n duty_n to_o pray_v for_o his_o people_n 1_o sam._n 12._o 23._o moses_n pray_v for_o israel_n he_o and_o aaron_n more_o than_o once_o stand_v in_o the_o
2._o 5._o god_n do_v work_v most_o mighty_o with_o such_o preach_n joh._n 4._o 18_o 19_o act._n 2._o 36_o 37._o reason_n 1._o every_o man_n through_o the_o self-love_n and_o hypocrisy_n that_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n be_v apt_a to_o put_v from_o himself_o to_o other_o general_a doctrine_n and_o reproof_n matth._n 21._o 41._o see_v 45_o 46._o verse_n 2._o till_o man_n sin_n be_v effectual_o discover_v to_o they_o they_o can_v never_o attain_v to_o any_o save_a grace_n john_n 16._o 8._o tit._n 1._o 13._o 3._o practice_n be_v the_o end_n of_o knowledge_n and_o nothing_o be_v perfect_a till_o it_o attain_v its_o end_n if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n happy_a be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o truth_n be_v never_o full_o and_o exact_o know_v but_o in_o the_o experience_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o hence_o that_o expression_n taste_n and_o see_v chap._n iii_o of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o government_n that_o there_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a government_n distinct_a from_o the_o civil_a it_o be_v apparent_a voetius_fw-la see_v the_o church_n and_o the_o state_n be_v distinct_a their_o government_n must_v be_v also_o distinct_a yea_o the_o church_n may_v be_v not_o only_o distinct_a but_o separate_a from_o the_o state_n neither_o the_o supreme_a nor_o subordinate_a power_n be_v incorporate_a in_o the_o church_n but_o mere_a alien_n from_o it_o and_o perhaps_o enemy_n to_o it_o god_n have_v establish_v two_o distinct_a power_n on_o earth_n sword_n the_o one_o of_o the_o key_n commit_v to_o the_o church_n the_o other_o of_o the_o sword_n commit_v to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n that_o of_o the_o key_n be_v ordain_v to_o work_v on_o the_o inward_a man_n have_v immediate_a relation_n to_o the_o remit_v or_o retain_v of_o sin_n that_o of_o the_o sword_n be_v appoint_v to_o work_v upon_o the_o outward_a man_n yield_v protection_n to_o the_o obedient_a and_o inflict_v external_a punishment_n upon_o the_o rebellious_a and_o disobedient_a some_o call_v it_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n other_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n other_o church-government_n that_o there_o be_v a_o church-power_n appear_v plain_o by_o christ_n give_v they_o the_o key_n matth._n 16._o 18_o 19_o john_n 20._o 23._o and_o also_o in_o the_o title_n of_o shepherd_n governor_n ruler_n and_o guide_n heb._n 13._o 7_o 17._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n the_o other_o thing_n there_o reckon_v be_v all_o peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a ministerial_a power_n 1._o potestas_fw-la ordinis_fw-la which_o consist_v mere_o way_n in_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n 2._o jurisdictionis_fw-la whereby_o they_o govern_v in_o the_o church_n by_o bind_v the_o impenitent_a and_o lose_v the_o penitent_n the_o object_n of_o this_o spiritual_a power_n be_v religious_a thing_n in_o a_o religious_a consideration_n power_n but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o absolute_a supreme_a power_n the_o ministerial_a power_n manifest_v itself_o 1._o in_o doctrinal_a decision_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o in_o make_v wholesome_a ecclesiastical_a law_n 3._o in_o execute_v church-censure_n but_o though_o they_o have_v power_n of_o declare_v god_n will_v concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n to_o the_o people_n yet_o they_o can_v make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n nor_o propound_v any_o thing_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v a_o great_a question_n penes_fw-la quos_fw-la sit_fw-la potestas_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la who_o be_v the_o subject_n 11._o of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a power_n the_o community_n of_o the_o faithful_a much_o less_o two_o or_o three_o separate_v from_o the_o world_n and_o gather_v together_o into_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o covenant_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a and_o immediate_a subject_n of_o power_n ecclesiastical_a matth._n 28._o 19_o 20._o john_n 20._o 21_o 22._o &_o 21._o 15_o 16._o be_v speak_v to_o special_a person_n not_o the_o whole_a community_n the_o apostle_n act._n 20._o 28_o speak_v unto_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v appoint_v overseer_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o they_o may_v govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n m._n rutherford_n say_v the_o key_n be_v give_v for_o the_o church_n but_o not_o to_o the_o church_n mr._n norton_n epist._n urge_v act._n 14._o 23._o to_o prove_v the_o power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o fraternity_n it_o be_v say_v there_o that_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n in_o every_o church_n they_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o by_o they_o he_o urge_v also_o act._n 6._o that_o prove_v nothing_o but_o that_o the_o election_n of_o officer_n do_v some_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o people_n but_o that_o their_o authority_n depend_v on_o the_o people_n can_v be_v thence_o collect_v mr._n norton_n chap._n 5._o of_o that_o book_n say_v quod_fw-la exercetur_fw-la nomine_fw-la christi_fw-la recipitur_fw-la immediatè_fw-la à _fw-la christo._n at_o officium_fw-la rectorum_fw-la exercetur_fw-la nomine_fw-la christi_fw-la 2_o cor._n 5._o 20._o here_o he_o not_o only_o grant_v but_o also_o prove_v rectores_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la esse_fw-la immediatum_fw-la subjectum_fw-la potestatis_fw-la against_o which_o he_o assert_v and_o argue_v in_o his_o four_o chapter_n and_o after_o in_o the_o same_o five_o chapter_n he_o say_v multitudo_fw-la non_fw-la committit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la rectoribus_fw-la tantum_fw-la designat_fw-la personas_fw-la therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o first_o and_o immediate_a subject_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v chap._n 4._o excommunication_n be_v the_o great_a and_o last_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n judicium_fw-la maximum_fw-la apol._n &_o tremendum_fw-la see_v mat._n 16._o 18._o mat._n 17._o &_o 18._o 1_o cor._n 5._o this_o ordinance_n be_v useful_a 1._o to_o the_o whole_a church_n hereby_o the_o honour_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o 22._o christ_n be_v preserve_v from_o the_o defilement_n and_o scandal_n which_o such_o a_o offence_n will_v bring_v upon_o it_o otherwise_o the_o evil_a example_n will_v infect_v 1_o cor._n 5._o 4._o this_o be_v typify_v by_o the_o leper_n who_o god_n will_v have_v shut_v up_o in_o his_o tent_n lest_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o congregation_n shall_v be_v infect_v 2._o god_n people_n be_v hereby_o make_v more_o watchful_a 3._o it_o be_v useful_a to_o the_o offender_n himself_o for_o the_o save_n of_o his_o soul_n be_v the_o end_n of_o it_o 1_o cor._n 5._o 3._o and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o commit_v the_o like_a fault_n again_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 20._o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n formaliter_fw-la &_o executiuè_fw-la be_v proper_a to_o the_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o governor_n and_o ruler_n in_o the_o church_n derive_v from_o christ_n to_o be_v exercise_v as_o christ_n shall_v go_v before_o they_o but_o with_o notice_n to_o and_o due_a regard_n have_v of_o the_o whole_a society_n the_o part_n of_o excommunication_n be_v first_o admonition_n 1_o thess._n 5._o 14._o 1._o this_o must_v be_v for_o a_o sin_n reprovable_a 2._o for_o scandalous_a matter_n not_o infirmity_n which_o be_v mourn_v for_o 3._o manage_v with_o wisdom_n zeal_n and_o love_n gal._n 6._o 1._o second_o excommunication_n which_o be_v to_o be_v execute_v on_o man_n for_o corrupt_a opinion_n titus_n 3._o 9_o 10._o revelat._n 2._o 15._o 2._o sinful_a practice_n 2_o thess._n 3._o 6._o 1_o cor._n 5._o 11._o it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o episcopus_fw-la prasit_fw-la presbytero_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la a_o bishop_n be_v a_o man_n choose_v out_o among_o the_o minister_n to_o have_v chief_a authority_n in_o the_o ordain_v of_o minister_n in_o a_o certain_a circuit_n and_o overseeing_a they_o with_o their_o flock_n the_o christian_a world_n see_v no_o other_o government_n for_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n after_o 4._o christ._n some_o urge_v this_o for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o their_o office_n by_o god_n word_n by_o proportion_n of_o the_o chief_a priest_n under_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o gospel_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v set_v over_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o over_o the_o levite_n numb_a 3._o &_o 4._o chapter_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v more_o eminent_a than_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n and_o not_o only_o exceed_v in_o excellency_n of_o gift_n but_o in_o amplitude_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n now_o say_v they_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o father_n that_o the_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o the_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o seventy_o disciple_n episc._n dau._n determinat_fw-la 42._o see_v b._n barlow_n antiq_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n jerom_n say_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n come_v in_o by_o mere_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n 6._o to_o avoid_v schism_n which_o arise_v for_o want_v of_o head_n but_o how_o can_v that_o be_v when_o it_o be_v
practise_v at_o alexandria_n by_o mark_n the_o evangelist_n christ_n meaning_n be_v not_o luk._n 22._o 25_o 26._o to_o make_v a_o equality_n among_o minister_n but_o to_o set_v a_o difference_n between_o king_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o none_o shall_v invade_v the_o right_n of_o prince_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o their_o ministry_n doctor_n hampton_n on_o that_o place_n see_v more_o there_o we_o confess_v say_v bishop_n davenant_n determinat_fw-la 42._o that_o according_a to_o christ_n appointment_n all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a in_o degree_n and_o power_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o that_o parity_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v here_o or_o any_o where_o establish_v which_o they_o maintain_v who_o oppose_v the_o episcopal_a dignity_n for_o notwithstanding_o this_o command_n of_o christ_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v superior_a in_o dignity_n and_o great_a in_o power_n then_o the_o twelve_o disciple_n and_o the_o chief_a pastor_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n which_o have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o those_o church_n 5._o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o superiority_n over_o the_o disciple_n either_o of_o ordination_n or_o jurisdiction_n 2._o the_o question_n be_v concern_v officer_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o the_o instance_n be_v of_o officer_n of_o different_a kind_n among_o who_o there_o may_v be_v superiority_n and_o inferiority_n as_o there_o be_v among_o we_o between_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o evangelist_n and_o pastor_n but_o one_o apostle_n have_v not_o superiority_n over_o another_o or_o one_o evangelist_n over_o another_o smectymn_n answer_v to_o a_o humble_a remonstrance_n sect._n 13._o add_v to_o this_o armachanus_fw-la bishop_n jewel_n dr_n whitaker_n and_o saravia_n with_o other_o make_z bishop_n and_o presbyter_n the_o same_o order_n though_o different_a degree_n learned_a divine_n both_o protestant_n and_o papist_n hold_v that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n episcopati_fw-la differ_v rather_o in_o execution_n of_o some_o act_n of_o their_o order_n appropriate_v to_o bishop_n only_o then_o in_o their_o essential_a order_n a_o bishop_n have_v a_o eminency_n of_o degree_n in_o the_o same_o order_n but_o his_o ecclesiastical_a order_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o presbyter_n or_o priest_n d._n featley_n in_o a_o conference_n with_o everard_n a_o popish_a priest_n there_o be_v say_v beza_n episcopus_fw-la divinus_fw-la humanus_fw-la &_o diabolicus_fw-la by_o the_o divine_a bishop_n he_o mean_v the_o bishop_n as_o he_o be_v take_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o a_o presbyter_n by_o the_o humane_a bishop_n he_o mean_v the_o bishop_n choose_v by_o the_o presbyter_n to_o be_v precedent_n over_o they_o and_o to_o rule_v with_o they_o by_o fix_a law_n and_o canon_n by_o the_o diabolical_a bishop_n he_o mean_v a_o bishop_n with_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n lord_v it_o over_o god_n heritage_n and_o govern_v by_o his_o own_o will_n and_o authority_n smectymn_n answ._n to_o humble_a remonst_z quer._n about_o episc._n see_v m._n bains_n dioc._n trial_n and_o cartw._n against_o whitg_n m._n gillesp._n aaron_n rod_n blossom_n l._n 2._o cap._n 11._o and_o 3._o and_o gers._fw-la buâ_n and_o mr_n seld._n eâtych_n the_o pope_n will_v be_v ecumenical_a bishop_n and_o plead_v that_o monarchy_n be_v the_o best_a government_n but_o chamier_n tom._n 2._o de_fw-fr romano_n pontifice_fw-la lib._n 9_o cap._n 8._o though_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o monarchy_n simple_o excel_v all_o other_o kind_n of_o government_n because_o all_o thing_n create_v be_v govern_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d viz._n by_o god_n alone_o and_o so_o that_o they_o can_v be_v more_o wise_o powerful_o and_o profitable_o administer_v yet_o say_v he_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o pope_n cause_n for_o in_o that_o say_v he_o we_o do_v not_o consider_v monarchy_n simple_o but_o describe_v with_o its_o certain_a circumstance_n viz._n of_o the_o person_n which_o rule_n or_o be_v rule_v and_o the_o government_n itself_o so_o that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v the_o best_a kind_n of_o government_n which_o be_v most_o profitable_a to_o those_o who_o be_v govern_v there_o can_v be_v conceive_v but_o three_o form_n of_o government_n episcopal_n most_o conformable_a to_o monarchy_n presbyterial_a to_o aristocracy_n and_o independent_a as_o they_o term_v it_o to_o democracy_n presbyterial_a be_v no_o elder_a than_o the_o reformation_n in_o geneva_n and_o independent_a than_o new-england_n episcopacy_n be_v either_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o immediate_a successor_n in_o the_o first_o and_o best_a age_n of_o the_o church_n d._n featleys_n sac._n nem_fw-la it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o ecclesiae_fw-la regimen_fw-la sit_fw-la monarchicum_fw-la aut_fw-la aristocraticum_fw-la whether_o eccles._n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v monarchical_a or_o aristrocratical_a the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o head_n christ_n be_v a_o monarchy_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o pastor_n that_o govern_v in_o common_a and_o with_o like_a authority_n among_o themselves_o it_o be_v a_o aristocracy_n or_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o best_a man_n in_o respect_n that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o seclude_v but_o have_v their_o interest_n in_o church-matter_n it_o be_v a_o democracy_n or_o popular_a estate_n cartw._n reply_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o admonit_a p._n 35._o he_o say_v the_o same_o on_o ephes._n 4._o 5._o whitaker_n have_v the_o like_a cont_n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n q._n 1._o c._n 1._o of_o counsel_n or_o synod_n the_o name_n of_o synod_n do_v in_o in_o his_o primary_n and_o large_a acception_n agree_v to_o every_o ibid._n assembly_n so_o do_v the_o name_n of_o council_n to_o every_o assembly_n of_o consultation_n the_o former_a be_v derive_v from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v all_o one_o with_o coetus_fw-la and_o import_v the_o assembly_n of_o any_o multitude_n which_o meet_v and_o come_v together_o the_o late_a be_v derive_v of_o cilia_fw-la 2._o whence_o also_o supercilium_fw-la import_v the_o common_a or_o joint_a intend_v or_o bend_v their_o eye_n both_o of_o body_n and_o mind_n to_o the_o investigation_n of_o truth_n in_o that_o matter_n which_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o assembly_n but_o both_o these_o word_n be_v now_o draw_v from_o those_o their_o large_a and_o primitive_a signification_n be_v by_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o use_n of_o speech_n restrain_v and_o appropriate_v to_o those_o assembly_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n wherein_o they_o come_v together_o to_o consult_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o concern_v either_o the_o faith_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n dr_n crakanth_n vigilius_n dormitans_fw-la cap._n 19_o coetus_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nomine_fw-la ad_fw-la decidendas_fw-la controversias_fw-la convocatur_fw-la synodus_fw-la seu_fw-la concilium_fw-la appellatur_fw-la wendelinus_n a_o synod_n be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n consist_v of_o fit_a person_n call_v by_o the_o church_n and_o send_v as_o their_o messenger_n to_o discover_v and_o determine_v of_o doubtful_a case_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n hooker_n survey_v of_o church-discipline_n part_n 4._o c._n 3._o if_o counsel_n have_v be_v simple_o necessary_a christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n at_o least_o will_v somewhere_o have_v command_v they_o to_o be_v celebrate_v which_o yet_o we_o read_v no_o where_o do_v by_o they_o beside_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n remain_v safe_a for_o three_o hundred_o year_n without_o a_o general_a council_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o to_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a for_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n that_o a_o commonwealth_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o humane_a council_n and_o can_v stand_v without_o it_o but_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v and_o preserve_v by_o god_n and_o though_o a_o council_n conduce_v to_o its_o external_a state_n yet_o the_o life_n and_o satiety_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o it_o a_o council_n which_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o it_o be_v compound_v of_o particular_a church_n be_v call_v universal_a or_o ecumenical_a the_o council_n which_o represent_v a_o particular_a church_n as_o it_o consist_v in_o one_o assembly_n be_v call_v a_o presbytery_n or_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n when_o it_o represent_v a_o particular_a church_n as_o it_o be_v constitute_v out_o of_o the_o consociation_n of_o many_o assembly_n it_o be_v call_v either_o a_o national_a council_n if_o ambassador_n come_v from_o all_o province_n into_o which_o the_o nation_n be_v disperse_v to_o that_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n or_o a_o provincial_a council_n if_o the_o church_n send_v only_o from_o one_o province_n deputy_n to_o the_o same_o assembly_n the_o most_o famous_a lawful_a and_o ecumenical_a counsel_n be_v those_o four_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n call_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a
the_o firstship_n if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o primacy_n this_o be_v such_o a_o primacy_n as_o a_o foreman_n of_o the_o quest_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v in_o juries_n not_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n as_o over_o inferior_n but_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n as_o among_o equal_n dr_n rainol_n against_o hart_n c._n 5._o p._n 174_o 175._o the_o pope_n succeed_v peter_n as_o night_n do_v the_o day_n a_o tempest_n a_o calm_a sickness_n health_n he_o succee_v peter_n only_o in_o denial_n of_o christ._n m._n perk._n on_o jude._n the_o painter_n picture_v peter_n with_o a_o red_a face_n as_o blush_v at_o his_o successor_n vice_n an_fw-mi pontifex_fw-la romanus_n sit_fw-la antichristus_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n papa_n or_o papas_n among_o the_o greek_n signify_v a_o father_n and_o be_v the_o appellative_a that_o 30._o little_a child_n begin_v to_o speak_v be_v wont_a to_o give_v to_o their_o parent_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n among_o the_o latin_n note_v a_o father_n or_o grandfather_n hence_o the_o christian_n in_o ancient_a time_n do_v use_v to_o call_v their_o spiritual_a father_n and_o bishop_n pape_n or_o pope_n so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o pape_n or_o pope_n be_v common_a to_o all_o bishop_n jerome_n write_v to_o angustin_n call_v he_o pope_n and_o write_v to_o the_o most_o honourable_a pope_n who_o yet_o be_v bishop_n of_o little_a hippo_n only_o therefore_o that_o name_n of_o pope_n do_v no_o way_n prove_v every_o one_o that_o be_v so_o call_v to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 5._o c._n 41._o vide_fw-la cham._n de_fw-fr oecum_fw-la pontif._n l._n 5._o c._n 2._o the_o pope_n have_v appropriate_v to_o himself_o the_o very_a name_n of_o papa_n that_o be_v pope_n which_o former_o sai_z their_z jesuit_n azorius_fw-la be_v common_a unto_o other_o bishop_n b._n morton_n protest_v appeal_n l._n 4._o c._n 19_o sect._n 1_o we_o stand_v not_o upon_o this_o word_n pope_n it_o be_v but_o father_n it_o be_v give_v to_o pastor_n to_o those_o that_o be_v worthy_a pastor_n ascribe_v to_o father_n in_o epistle_n and_o superscription_n 2._o as_o to_o augustine_n a_o poor_a bishop_n and_o to_o paulinus_n a_o poor_a deacon_n a_o name_n of_o reverence_n now_o grow_v odious_a d._n fentons_n treatise_n against_o reconciliat_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n every_o pope_n at_o his_o entrance_n do_v change_v his_o name_n which_o custom_n begin_v an._n dom._n 687._o when_o he_o who_o christian_a name_n be_v os_fw-la porci_fw-la forsake_v it_o to_o be_v call_v sergius_n b._n mort._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la i_o will_v not_o conclude_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n i_o be_o antichristo_fw-la not_o of_o his_o mind_n that_o say_v it_o be_v as_o clear_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n as_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n learned_a chamier_n say_v quicunque_fw-la homo_fw-la omnes_fw-la capit_fw-la notas_fw-la antichristi_fw-la quas_fw-la scriptura_fw-la delineavit_fw-la be_v est_fw-la antichristus_fw-la at_o episcopus_fw-la oecumenicus_fw-la capit_fw-la eas_fw-la omnes_fw-la notas_fw-la he_o to_o who_o all_o the_o note_n give_v by_o the_o scripture_n of_o antichrist_n joint_o agree_v he_o be_v antichrist_n but_o to_o the_o pope_n all_o the_o note_n give_v of_o antichrist_n joint_o agree_v other_o go_v this_o way_n also_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n because_o he_o be_v bear_v at_o bethlehem_n but_o because_o what_o ever_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o messiah_n agree_v to_o he_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n because_o one_o of_o the_o note_n give_v about_o antichrist_n belong_v to_o he_o but_o because_o all_o but_o i_o suppose_v that_o those_o two_o main_a circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o antichrist_n agree_v to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o weighty_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n 1._o the_o place_n the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n be_v describe_v revel_n 17._o ult_n which_o be_v rome_n and_o the_o time_n when_o he_o that_o let_v be_v take_v away_o which_o be_v the_o emperor_n in_o these_o two_o thing_n the_o ancient_a father_n agree_v antichrist_n as_o god_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v 19_o god_n 2_o thess._n 2._o 4_o that_o be_v he_o shall_v rule_v and_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n make_v himself_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nero_n be_v cruel_a against_o believer_n but_o he_o âate_z not_o in_o the_o church_n to_o sit_v here_o be_v to_o take_v and_o exercise_v judiciary_n authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n vide_fw-la grotium_fw-la in_o luc._n 20._o see_v mat._n 19_o 28._o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v call_v sancta_fw-la sedes_fw-la the_o apostasy_n of_o antichrist_n be_v describe_v 2_o thess._n 2._o 3._o there_o shall_v be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a church_n fall_v away_o from_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n to_o idolatry_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1._o this_o apostasy_n do_v imply_v their_o former_a embrace_n of_o the_o truth_n their_o faith_n be_v former_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n as_o now_o their_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n be_v therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n no_o heathen_a emperor_n nor_o the_o turk_n can_v be_v antichrist_n he_o shall_v not_o only_o apostatise_v but_o shall_v seduce_v many_o and_o make_v they_o drink_v with_o that_o deadly_a poison_n see_v m._n mede_n apostasy_n of_o the_o late_a time_n the_o miracle_n of_o antichrist_n be_v set_v forth_o 2_o thes._n 2._o 9_o 11._o their_o end_n be_v to_o confirm_v a_o false_a doctrine_n in_o transubstantiation_n there_o be_v miracle_n upon_o miracle_n the_o priest_n if_o he_o please_v can_v turn_v all_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o town_n into_o christ_n blood_n how_o often_o have_v the_o people_n see_v blood_n in_o the_o bread_n the_o vice_n of_o antichrist_n may_v also_o be_v urge_v 11._o 1._o his_o pride_n he_o shall_v exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n that_o be_v prince_n so_o the_o pope_n he_o take_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ._n bellarmine_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o apply_v that_o in_o isaiah_n to_o the_o pope_n behold_v i_o lie_v in_o zion_n a_o foundation_n stone_n isa._n 28._o 16._o 2._o his_o cruelty_n the_o whore_n be_v say_v to_o be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n so_o the_o pope_n and_o rev._n 13._o it_o be_v give_v he_o to_o kill_v whoever_o will_v not_o adore_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n 3._o covetousness_n he_o shall_v with_o feign_a word_n make_v merchandise_n of_o many_o so_o the_o pope_n add_v to_o this_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n general_o of_o b._n jewel_n of_o whitaker_n downam_n perkins_n fox_n abbot_n brightman_n rainolds_n powel_n and_o dr_n sclater_n on_o 2_o thes._n with_o divers_a other_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n respon_n herein_o it_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v value_v because_o they_o live_v before_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o do_v not_o dream_v of_o such_o a_o antichrist_n as_o afterward_o rise_v up_o it_o be_v a_o question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n a_o antichristus_fw-la sit_fw-la singularis_fw-la homo_fw-la 1._o whether_o antichrist_n be_v one_o person_n bellarmine_n say_v he_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v one_o person_n not_o in_o number_n and_o nature_n as_o one_o certain_a and_o singular_a man_n one_o at_o once_o by_o law_n and_o institution_n though_o successive_o so_o many_o as_o have_v enjoy_v the_o papacy_n the_o papist_n when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n this_o 1500_o year_n do_v not_o mean_v any_o one_o pope_n but_o the_o whole_a rabble_n of_o they_o since_o the_o year_n 607._o so_o antichrist_n be_v one_o person_n not_o at_o once_o ordinary_o but_o continue_v in_o a_o succession_n of_o many_o when_o we_o say_v the_o pope_n the_o emperor_n the_o king_n the_o priest_n the_o minister_n the_o eye_n the_o hand_n we_o mean_v not_o one_o particular_a but_o the_o whole_a kind_n it_o can_v be_v a_o individual_a man_n in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o thes._n 2._o the_o mystery_n of_o antichrist_n do_v then_o begin_v to_o work_v and_o yet_o it_o shall_v hold_v till_o the_o very_a come_n of_o christ_n where_o be_v the_o man_n that_o live_v so_o long_o it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o papa_n sit_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarius_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n innocent_n the_o three_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bridegroom_n because_o i_o have_v a_o noble_a a_o 18._o rich_a a_o gracious_a spouse_n viz._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o believer_n it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o
papa_n praesit_fw-la aliis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o all_o other_o bishop_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bellarmine_n call_v notable_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n st_n gregory_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v renounce_v in_o himself_o and_o detest_v in_o all_o other_o call_z it_o a_o title_n of_o novelty_n error_n impiety_n blasphemy_n pronounce_v any_o one_o that_o shall_v presume_v to_o challenge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n b._n mort._n appeal_n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o sect._n 29._o the_o universal_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n necessary_o betoken_v a_o absolute_a monarchical_a jurisdiction_n of_o some_o one_o over_o all_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n but_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n signify_v the_o care_n and_o study_v any_o bishop_n have_v for_o the_o universal_a good_a of_o the_o church_n as_o 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o so_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v style_v the_o most_o catholic_n king_n or_o king_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o universal_a king_n and_o sovereign_a over_o all_o other_o king_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v another_o question_n a_o papa_n possit_fw-la confer_v bullas_fw-la &_o indulgentias_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n can_v confer_v bull_n and_o indulgence_n their_o own_o learned_a author_n plain_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v not_o find_v any_o one_o express_a testimony_n for_o proof_n hereof_o either_o in_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o write_n of_o ancient_a father_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o that_o afterward_o the_o fear_n of_o purgatory_n hatch_v indulgence_n 3._o that_o the_o first_o who_o extend_v indulgence_n unto_o purgatory_n be_v pope_n boniface_n 6._o the_o 8_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ._n luther_n begin_v his_o opposition_n unto_o rome_n in_o reprehend_v their_o article_n of_o indulgen_n indulgence_n he_o will_v have_v set_v down_o at_o the_o first_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o indulgence_n have_v be_v grant_v but_o god_n lead_v he_o on_o to_o declare_v against_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n the_o indulgence_n whereof_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v mitigation_n of_o some_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n before_o inflict_v on_o the_o live_n for_o their_o amendment_n these_o now_o grant_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v relaxation_n from_o satisfactory_a pain_n in_o purgatory_n flame_n after_o this_o life_n it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o papa_n possit_fw-la leges_fw-la condere_fw-la quae_fw-la obligent_fw-la conscientias_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v law_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n conscience_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bind_v when_o it_o be_v charge_v by_o he_o who_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o it_o to_o perform_v its_o duty_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o all_o our_o action_n unto_o god_n and_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o they_o to_o accuse_v or_o excuse_v we_o rom._n 2._o 15._o god_n be_v the_o only_a binder_n of_o conscience_n jam._n 4._o 12._o he_o be_v great_a than_o the_o conscience_n rom._n 13._o 5._o affirm_v only_o that_o conscience_n be_v bind_v but_o determine_v not_o that_o man_n law_n bind_v it_o 5._o bellarmine_n say_v mens_fw-la law_n bind_v non_fw-la minus_fw-la quam_fw-la lex_fw-la divina_fw-la we_o deny_v not_o rem_fw-la but_o only_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o modo_fw-la they_o bind_v not_o immediate_o but_o mediate_o not_o primary_o but_o secondary_o not_o in_o they_o and_o of_o their_o own_o power_n but_o in_o the_o force_n and_o virtue_n of_o divine_a law_n they_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n determine_v vice_n to_o be_v virtue_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o yea_o tolet_n say_v a_o man_n shall_v merit_v of_o god_n in_o so_o believe_v there_o be_v these_o question_n a_o papa_n sit_fw-la supra_fw-la reges_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o king_n an_fw-mi possit_fw-la reges_fw-la excommunicare_fw-la 21._o whether_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v king_n he_o have_v sovereign_a dominion_n say_v they_o over_o all_o prince_n in_o temporal_a case_n indirect_o but_o espencaetis_n ad_fw-la titum_fw-la cap._n 3._o pag._n 513._o confess_v from_o that_o scripture_n rom._n 13._o 1._o that_o chrysostome_n theodoret_n theophylact_fw-mi and_o all_o the_o greek_a doctor_n and_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n gregory_n and_o bernard_n do_v from_o thence_o teach_v that_o every_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o priest_n be_v command_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o subjection_n unto_o emperor_n the_o pope_n hadrian_n the_o 4_o be_v not_o only_o angry_a with_o frederick_n the_o emperor_n but_o for_o a_o while_n deny_v he_o the_o imperial_a crown_n because_o he_o hold_v his_o right_a stirrup_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v hold_v his_o left_a which_o error_n he_o excuse_v because_o he_o be_v unaccustomed_a to_o such_o service_n bellarmine_n say_v the_o pope_n have_v power_n in_o temporal_a thing_n indirect_o only_a but_o his_o book_n shall_v have_v be_v burn_v for_o it_o object_n christ_n have_v a_o natural_a dominion_n over_o all_o kingdom_n therefore_o the_o pope_n his_o vicar_n have_v also_o answ._n tertullian_n call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n see_v john_n 14._o there_o be_v another_o question_n a_o papae_fw-la solius_fw-la sit_fw-la statuere_fw-la de_fw-la controversiis_fw-la fidei_fw-la whether_o ecclesiast_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n alone_o to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o law_n may_v well_o stand_v together_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o judge_n of_o god_n appointment_n have_v he_o intend_v any_o such_o judge_n he_o will_v have_v name_v he_o lest_o otherwise_o as_o now_o it_o be_v our_o judge_n of_o controversy_n shall_v be_v our_o great_a controversy_n chillingworth_n part_n 1._o cap._n 2._o sect._n 10._o pag._n 57_o it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o papa_n possit_fw-la remittere_fw-la peccata_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n can_v pardon_v sin_n trecelius_fw-la affirm_v that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v lie_v with_o our_o lady_n the_o mother_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v get_v she_o with_o child_n yet_o the_o pope_n pardon_n be_v able_a to_o set_v he_o free_a the_o pharisee_n say_v true_a though_o he_o misapply_v it_o luk._n 5._o 21._o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n alone_o there_o be_v another_o question_n a_o papa_n possit_fw-la errare_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n may_v 2._o err_v the_o pope_n say_v they_o as_o a_o private_a person_n or_o doctor_n may_v err_v but_o not_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n in_o the_o chair_n yea_o judge_v from_o the_o chair_n he_o may_v err_v in_o question_n of_o fact_n but_o not_o in_o question_n of_o faith_n nay_o he_o may_v err_v in_o discuss_v question_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o premise_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o conclusion_n e_o cathedra_fw-la docens_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la tripod_n oracula_fw-la fundens_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la errare_fw-la potest_fw-la summus_n pontifex_n say_v bellarmine_n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 3_o cum_fw-la totam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la docet_fw-la in_o his_o quae_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la pertinent_a nullo_n casu_fw-la errare_fw-la potest_fw-la see_v our_o rhemist_n on_o luk._n 22._o 31._o the_o high-priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n say_v bellarmine_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la l._n 4_o c._n 3._o have_v on_o his_o breastplate_n doctrine_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a version_n therefore_o the_o high-priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o pope_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n can_v err_v in_o any_o case_n how_o well_o that_o argumentation_n proceed_v from_o the_o high-priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o the_o high-priest_n of_o the_o new_a let_v the_o learned_a judge_n nescio_fw-la cur_n non_fw-la possit_fw-la dici_fw-la quòd_fw-la gregorius_n papa_n cum_fw-la homo_fw-la fuerit_fw-la &_o non_fw-la deus_fw-la potuerit_fw-la errare_fw-la durand_n l._n 4._o distinct_a quaest._n 4._o of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o monk_n of_o the_o jesuit_n the_o pope_n in_o divers_a bull_n call_v they_o belove_v son_n in_o which_o title_n they_o much_o glory_n the_o jesuit_n above_o all_o other_o regulars_n make_v to_o the_o pope_n a_o vow_n of_o present_a and_o hyperapistes_n absolute_a obedience_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v they_o to_o go_v whithersoever_o he_o shall_v send_v they_o to_o turk_n infidel_n heretic_n without_o excuse_n denial_n or_o delay_n they_o be_v to_o the_o pope_n what_o the_o janissary_n be_v to_o the_o turk_n and_o uphold_v he_o chief_o their_o order_n be_v erect_v in_o the_o year_n 1540_o hospin_n de_fw-fr orig_n jesuit_n l._n 1_o c._n 1._o they_o be_v the_o frog_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n that_o croak_v in_o king_n chamber_n to_o provoke_v they_o to_o war_n as_o in_o ancient_a time_n there_o be_v no_o
free_o to_o consent_n and_o resist_v every_o such_o motion_n the_o romanist_n plead_v for_o the_o power_n of_o man_n will_n but_o protestant_n for_o the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n grace_n if_o the_o question_n be_v move_v whether_o freewill_n may_v resist_v grace_n it_o be_v apparent_a natural_o in_o the_o unregenerate_a it_o may_v resist_v according_a to_o that_o act_n 7._o 51._o but_o if_o the_o ãâã_d question_n be_v move_v of_o they_o that_o be_v call_v according_a to_o god_n purpose_n whether_o they_o resist_v the_o grace_n of_o their_o call_n then_o remove_v the_o humour_n of_o contention_n the_o truth_n will_v easy_o appear_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o nature_n in_o this_o case_n do_v resist_v 14._o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n deo_fw-la volenti_fw-la salvum_fw-la facere_fw-la nullum_fw-la resistit_fw-la hominis_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la there_o be_v a_o twofold_a resistance_n of_o the_o will_n say_v the_o schoolman_n 1._o connata_fw-la bear_v with_o it_o there_o be_v possibility_n to_o sin_n in_o the_o best_a creature_n as_o creature_n 2._o actualis_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o a_o almighty_a power_n overcome_v this_o psal._n 110._o 3._o 18._o the_o arminian_n have_v revive_v the_o old_a pelagian_a heresy_n they_o say_v they_o magnify_v god_n free_a grace_n ibid._n and_o it_o be_v free_a grace_n for_o god_n to_o give_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n and_o to_o send_v the_o gospel_n to_o a_o place_n but_o then_o ask_v they_o about_o gratia_n discriminans_fw-la why_o simon_n peter_n receive_v the_o gospel_n rather_o than_o simon_n magus_n they_o say_v god_n determine_v no_o man_n will_n but_o because_o peter_n receive_v it_o and_o the_o other_o reject_v it_o it_o arise_v whole_o from_o his_o determine_a himself_o than_o christ_n shall_v do_v no_o more_o in_o his_o own_o and_o father_n intention_n for_o a_o save_v then_o a_o damn_a person_n no_o man_n have_v power_n to_o receive_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v offer_v unless_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o object_n why_o then_o do_v the_o lord_n exhort_v we_o to_o receive_v he_o or_o complain_v of_o we_o and_o threaten_v damnation_n if_o we_o receive_v he_o not_o answ._n the_o lord_n use_v these_o reproof_n and_o exhortation_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o work_v upon_o they_o who_o he_o purpose_v to_o save_v 2._o to_o show_v that_o some_o work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v on_o our_o part_n though_o not_o by_o our_o own_o strength_n it_o must_v be_v do_v à _fw-la nobis_fw-la though_o not_o ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la so_o the_o papist_n argue_v from_o god_n command_n god_n will_v not_o command_v we_o to_o do_v good_a work_n if_o we_o have_v not_o power_n to_o do_v they_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v make_v 18._o the_o tree_n good_a and_o then_o the_o fruit_n will_v be_v good_a he_o do_v not_o imply_v that_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o do_v so_o but_o only_o show_v what_o our_o duty_n and_o obligation_n be_v see_v rom._n 7._o 15._o gal._n 5._o 17._o god_n give_v the_o law_n for_o these_o end_n 1._o to_o show_v man_n his_o duty_n the_o obligation_n that_o lie_v on_o he_o i_o may_v put_v my_o debtor_n in_o mind_n of_o his_o debt_n though_o he_o be_v turn_v bankrupt_a 2._o to_o show_v he_o his_o disability_n 3._o to_o show_v he_o the_o misery_n he_o shall_v be_v in_o if_o god_n will_v urge_v this_o debt_n on_o he_o to_o discharge_v it_o himself_o 4._o to_o show_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o provide_v a_o mean_n to_o satisfy_v his_o justice_n and_o also_o the_o exceed_a love_n of_o christ_n in_o fulfil_v the_o law_n for_o he_o object_n the_o arminian_n say_v how_o can_v the_o will_v be_v free_a when_o it_o be_v determine_v how_o can_v omnipotent_a grace_n and_o freewill_n stand_v together_o and_o some_o talk_n of_o a_o libertas_n contrarietatis_fw-la when_o one_o can_v will_v good_a or_o evil_n this_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n as_o between_o the_o jesuit_n and_o dominican_n so_o between_o we_o and_o the_o arminian_n answ._n the_o freedom_n of_o the_o will_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v free_a and_o indifferent_a 10._o to_o choose_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n for_o so_o god_n and_o the_o good_a angel_n shall_v not_o be_v free_a see_v they_o can_v will_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a there_o be_v no_o true_a liberty_n but_o unto_o that_o which_o be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v a_o perfection_n to_o be_v able_a to_o sin_n be_v a_o imperfection_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 11._o ubi_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la libertas_fw-la arbitrii_fw-la august_n a_o power_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v be_v not_o a_o part_n of_o adam_n liberty_n his_o power_n to_o fall_v come_v from_o his_o mutability_n not_o liberty_n it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o faciânti_fw-la totum_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la naturae_fw-la viribus_fw-la dentur_fw-la insallibiliter_fw-la 2._o auxilia_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la supernaturalia_fw-la whether_o god_n will_v give_v supernatural_a grace_n to_o he_o that_o use_v well_o his_o natural_a ability_n let_v any_o man_n use_v the_o power_n that_o god_n give_v he_o and_o he_o shall_v have_v more_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o infallibilis_fw-la nâxus_fw-la that_o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o in_o the_o use_n of_o our_o natural_a ability_n to_o add_v supernatural_a grace_n mr_n fânnâr_n on_o ezâk_n 18._o 31_o 32._o a_o man_n in_o his_o natural_a condition_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v offensive_a to_o god_n no_o man_n ever_o yet_o by_o the_o right_a use_n of_o natural_n obtain_v evangelical_n grace_n that_o be_v a_o vain_a power_n which_o be_v never_o reduce_v into_o act_n it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o naturae_fw-la viribus_fw-la possit_fw-la aliqua_fw-la vera_fw-la tentatio_fw-la superari_fw-la whether_o 7._o a_o man_n by_o strength_n of_o nature_n be_v able_a to_o conquer_v corruption_n or_o resist_v temptation_n before_o conversion_n we_o can_v resist_v sin_n as_o sin_n but_o exchange_v one_o sin_n with_o another_o we_o can_v discern_v good_a from_o evil_n sin_n be_v connatural_a to_o we_o jer._n 8._o 6._o no_o more_o be_v we_o able_a to_o resist_v temptation_n without_o grace_n all_o temptation_n be_v to_o draw_v we_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o some_o temporal_a good_a or_o to_o the_o decline_a some_o temporal_a evil_n by_o leave_v god_n till_o a_o man_n be_v persuade_v that_o god_n promise_v a_o great_a good_a and_o threaten_v a_o great_a evil_n than_o the_o world_n can_v do_v he_o can_v resist_v such_o temptation_n we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n and_o stand_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v need_n all_o to_o pray_v lord_n lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n and_o keep_v back_o thy_o servant_n from_o presumptuous_a sin_n see_v ephes._n 6._o 10._o some_o speak_v of_o reconcile_a freewill_n with_o god_n decree_n grace_n and_o sin_n other_o of_o the_o concord_n of_o it_o and_o god_n prescience_n and_o providence_n tully_n think_v prescience_n and_o freewill_n can_v not_o stand_v together_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o may_v assert_v the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n he_o deny_v the_o prescience_n of_o 9_o future_a thing_n atque_fw-la ita_fw-la dum_fw-la vult_fw-la facere_fw-la liberos_fw-la facit_fw-la sacrilegos_fw-la chap._n iu._n of_o save_v faith_n faith_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v take_v 1._o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n jude_n vers_fw-la 3._o such_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v orthodox_n this_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n 2._o for_o the_o habit_n or_o grace_n of_o faith_n whereby_o we_o receive_v christ_n and_o accept_v he_o for_o our_o saviour_n so_o it_o be_v often_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n faith_n in_o its_o general_a nature_n be_v any_o assent_n unto_o some_o truth_n upon_o the_o justif_a authority_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v it_o and_o the_o general_a nature_n of_o divine_a faith_n be_v to_o assent_v to_o the_o truth_n because_o god_n say_v it_o our_o assent_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v be_v either_o humaâe_n mere_o because_o of_o custom_n education_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o divine_a be_v incline_v and_o move_v thereunto_o because_o of_o divine_a authority_n many_o protestant_n have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o humane_a faith_n it_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o father_n and_o of_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n 1._o a_o act_n of_o the_o understanding_n a_o assent_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o nature_n office_n work_n as_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v he_o 2._o a_o act_n of_o the_o will_n consent_v that_o christ_n shall_v do_v for_o i_o what_o the_o lord_n send_v he_o to_o do_v for_o poor_a sinner_n 3._o a_o siducial_a assiance_n and_o dependence_n on_o he_o the_o soc_n man_n by_o faith_n
walk_v by_o faith_n we_o die_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v save_v faith_n be_v a_o infuse_v not_o a_o acquire_v habit_n grevinchovius_n say_v that_o habitual_a faith_n be_v beget_v in_o we_o by_o frequent_a act_n of_o faith_n proceed_v from_o the_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n as_o by_o often_o act_n of_o justice_n and_o liberality_n the_o act_n of_o justice_n and_o liberality_n be_v produce_v in_o we_o this_o opinion_n of_o he_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o modern_a divine_n both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n which_o with_o unanimous_a consent_n call_v theological_a virtue_n infuse_v habit_n but_o also_o be_v subject_n to_o divers_a inconvenience_n that_o place_n heb._n 11._o 6_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o regenerate_a when_o they_o amyraldum_n sleep_v and_o do_v not_o actual_o believe_v do_v displease_v god_n and_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n teach_v ephes._n 2._o 8._o phil._n 1._o 29._o &_o 2._o 13._o see_v john_n 6._o 44._o to_o come_v to_o christ_n be_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n witness_n christ_n himself_o ver_fw-la 35._o whether_o actual_a or_o habitual_a faith_n be_v in_o infant_n some_o call_v it_o efficacious_a faith_n some_o a_o principle_n other_o a_o inclination_n some_o dislike_n the_o word_n habit_n that_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o faith_n grow_v and_o ripe_a the_o word_n seed_n or_o principle_n be_v better_a 1_o john_n 4._o 9_o ibid._n some_o think_v the_o question_n about_o infant_n believe_v be_v unnecessary_a and_o curious_a and_o that_o they_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o freegrace_n of_o god_n mark_v 16._o 16._o such_o place_n do_v not_o only_o concern_v grow_v person_n the_o lord_n promise_v grace_n to_o infant_n isa._n 44._o 3._o and_o glory_n matth._n 19_o 14._o &_o 18._o 6._o compare_v with_o mark_n 9_o 36._o see_v 1_o cor._n 7._o 14._o pelagian_n say_v infant_n be_v save_v by_o god_n foresight_n of_o those_o good_a work_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v live_v augustine_n refute_v this_o opinion_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 10._o every_o one_o be_v to_o be_v save_v according_a to_o what_o he_o have_v do_v the_o lutheran_n will_v have_v they_o save_v by_o a_o actual_a faith_n though_o it_o be_v unexpressible_a beza_n say_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o parent_n be_v impute_v to_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n mr._n down_o have_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o infant_n and_o how_o they_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o go_v much_o that_o way_n but_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v habitual_a or_o actual_a faith_n whether_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o saint_n when_o they_o be_v translate_v into_o heaven_n and_o see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n some_o say_v there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o bless_a saint_n since_o they_o both_o believe_v thing_n past_a all_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o our_o sake_n and_o thing_n to_o come_v 13._o viz._n the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o last_o judgement_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n past_a and_o to_o come_v depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o office_n and_o employment_n of_o faith_n shall_v cease_v though_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o do_v not_o it_o be_v a_o great_a question_n a_o side_n justisicans_fw-la in_o decalogo_fw-la praecipiatur_fw-la whether_o justify_v mâulin_n faith_n be_v command_v in_o the_o decalogue_n adam_n have_v a_o power_n to_o believe_v what_o god_n propound_v as_o a_o object_n of_o faith_n the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o propound_v to_o he_o it_o be_v command_v there_o therefore_o not_o directè_fw-la because_o not_o reveal_v to_o adam_n but_z redisctiué_fw-fr it_o stand_v not_o with_o adam_n covenant_n he_o be_v to_o be_v righteous_a himself_o not_o to_o look_v for_o the_o righteousness_n of_o another_o adam_n in_o the_o state_n of_o innocency_n have_v a_o power_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o in_o that_o state_n can_v not_o be_v reduce_v to_o act_v he_o have_v the_o affection_n of_o sorrow_n but_o can_v not_o mourn_v for_o want_v of_o a_o object_n so_o the_o angel_n have_v a_o power_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o their_o confirmation_n though_o christ_n be_v not_o make_v know_v till_o the_o second_o covenant_n there_o be_v a_o power_n then_o give_v not_o only_o to_o obey_v god_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n but_o to_o submit_v to_o god_n for_o the_o change_n of_o the_o covenant_n when_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v not_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o change_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o man_n fall_v be_v a_o sin_n gal._n 4._o 21._o therefore_o adam_n have_v a_o power_n to_o submit_v to_o it_o whether_o faith_n or_o repentance_n precede_v to_o repent_v be_v prefix_v before_o believe_v mark_v 1._o 15._o in_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n repentance_n must_v needs_o be_v first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o act_n of_o contrition_n acknowledgemement_n and_o grief_n for_o sin_n the_o law_n precede_v the_o gospel_n and_o one_o be_v not_o to_o be_v raise_v before_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v cast_v down_o and_o although_o save_v repentance_n consider_v complete_o according_a to_o all_o its_o act_n be_v not_o without_o faith_n yet_o it_o precede_v it_o according_a to_o some_o act_n christian_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n first_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o question_n a_o sine_fw-la speciali_fw-la revelatione_fw-la possumus_fw-la credere_fw-la mysteria_fw-la fidei_fw-la 3._o whether_o without_o a_o special_a revelation_n we_o can_v believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n the_o arminian_n cry_v down_o faith_n and_o call_v it_o scripturarum_fw-la tyrannidem_fw-la &_o theologorum_fw-la ludibrium_fw-la and_o cry_v down_o all_o infuse_a habit_n will_v have_v none_o but_o acquire_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o divers_a truth_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v 1._o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n none_o of_o the_o heathen_n believe_v this_o see_v act._n 23._o 8._o matth._n 22._o 23_o 29._o some_o that_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n pervert_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 18._o the_o disciple_n themselves_o be_v long_o in_o believe_v it_o luk._n 24._o 11._o joh._n 20._o 25._o 2._o the_o depravednesse_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o enmity_n of_o natural_a reason_n to_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n the_o philosopher_n see_v clear_o the_o common_a principle_n of_o justice_n and_o injustice_n but_o not_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n rom._n 7._o 7._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n 3._o the_o necessity_n of_o renovation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o great_a doctrine_n of_o regeneration_n john_n 3._o 3._o when_o our_o saviour_n have_v bring_v argument_n to_o prove_v this_o doctrine_n and_o answer_v objection_n against_o it_o how_o blind_a still_o be_v nicodemus_n v_o 9_o of_o that_o chapter_n 4._o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v this_o mediator_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a believe_v these_o truth_n with_o a_o common_a faith_n but_o we_o need_v faith_n to_o believe_v these_o truth_n save_o 2._o we_o need_v faith_n also_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o god_n rom._n 5._o 3._o we_o can_v come_v to_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n nor_o to_o christ_n but_o by_o faith_n 3._o to_o conform_v we_o to_o god_n image_n act_v 15._o 9_o 4._o without_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n we_o can_v abide_v with_o god_n matth._n 11._o 6._o heb._n 3._o 12._o 13._o 5._o we_o can_v take_v fullness_n of_o delight_n and_o complacency_n in_o god_n but_o by_o faith_n heb._n 11._o 6._o we_o can_v please_v god_n nor_o he_o we_o till_o we_o believe_v the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o be_v well_o please_v with_o he_o second_o what_o it_o be_v to_o live_v by_o faith_n 1._o it_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o goodness_n of_o all_o that_o which_o god_n command_v as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o he_o promise_v and_o the_o real_a evil_n of_o all_o that_o evil_n he_o forbid_v as_o well_o as_o threaten_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o for_o our_o good_a as_o well_o as_o his_o promise_n deut._n 10._o 12._o psal._n 73._o ult_n the_o devil_n tremble_v at_o god_n threaten_n but_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o evil_a of_o sin_n which_o he_o forbid_v for_o than_o they_o will_v not_o rebel_v against_o god_n 2._o to_o look_v after_o those_o thing_n principal_o that_o be_v future_a rather_o then_o the_o
some_o say_v it_o be_v a_o eternal_a transaction_n before_o all_o time_n only_o manifest_v to_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n there_o be_v four_o set_v period_n of_o justification_n first_o in_o god_n purpose_n which_o reach_v as_o far_o as_o the_o eternal_a transaction_n between_o god_n and_o christ_n such_o as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o lamb_n book_n second_o when_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o name_n and_o stead_n of_o sinner_n perform_v that_o which_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o justification_n but_o in_o neither_o of_o these_o period_n be_v the_o soul_n translate_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n three_o actual_o at_o that_o moment_n when_o we_o come_v to_o own_o christ_n as_o a_o saviour_n by_o believe_v four_o when_o the_o spirit_n which_o translate_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o soul._n other_o say_v there_o be_v five_o as_o it_o be_v period_n or_o degree_n of_o justification_n 1._o when_o the_o lord_n pass_v a_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n on_o man_n at_o their_o first_o conversion_n immediate_o upon_o their_o union_n with_o christ_n act._n 13._o 38_o 39_o 2._o he_o that_o be_v justify_v fall_v into_o daily_a transgression_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v a_o daily_a imputation_n and_o application_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n john_n 13._o 10._o 3._o there_o be_v a_o high_a act_n of_o justification_n after_o great_a and_o eminent_a fall_n though_o there_o it_o be_v not_o a_o intercision_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o sequestration_n such_o can_v then_o plead_v their_o right_n david_n sin_n of_o adultery_n and_o murder_n make_v a_o great_a breach_n upon_o his_o justification_n therefore_o he_o pray_v god_n psal._n 51._o to_o purge_v he_o with_o hyssop_n to_o apply_v anew_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n 4._o there_o follow_v a_o certification_n a_o sentence_n pass_v in_o the_o soul_n concern_v man_n estate_n 1_o john_n 5._o 9_o rom._n 8._o 33_o 34._o 7._o 5._o justification_n be_v never_o perfect_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n act._n 3._o 19_o then_o sentence_n be_v pass_v in_o open_a court_n before_o man_n and_o angel_n of_o preparatory_a work_n to_o justification_n the_o 13_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n say_v work_v do_v before_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n or_o justification_n because_o they_o be_v not_o do_v as_o god_n have_v command_v they_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o be_v sin_n matth._n 7._o a_o corrupt_a tree_n bring_v forth_o corrupt_a fruit_n heb._n 11._o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n tit._n 2._o 9_o to_o the_o defile_v all_o thing_n be_v defile_v whether_o these_o work_n without_o faith_n merit_v ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la potest_fw-la homo_fw-la nondum_fw-la reconciliatus_fw-la per_fw-la opera_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la impetrare_fw-la &_o mereri_fw-la ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la 8._o gratiam_fw-la justificationis_fw-la bellarm._n l._n 5._o the_o great_a &_o lib._n arbit_n c._n 22._o the_o papist_n say_v one_o must_v dispose_v and_o sit_v himself_o by_o alm_n and_o repentance_n to_o partake_v of_o christ_n this_o they_o call_v meritum_fw-la ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la and_o then_o say_v they_o one_o receive_v primam_fw-la gratiam_fw-la see_v 2_o cor._n 3._o 5._o rom._n 9_o 15_o 16._o we_o confess_v that_o god_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o infuse_v save_v grace_n but_o into_o heart_n fit_v and_o prepare_v but_o he_o work_v these_o preparation_n by_o his_o own_o spirit_n see_v b._n dau._n determ_fw-la of_o quaest._n 34._o whether_o work_v with_o faith_n deserve_v grace_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la we_o say_v not_o as_o bellarmine_n 13._o charge_v we_o that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o regenerate_a be_v simple_o sin_n but_o in_o a_o certain_a respect_n the_o papist_n say_v after_o one_o be_v make_v a_o new-creature_n he_o can_v perform_v such_o work_n as_o have_v a_o intrinsical_a merit_n in_o they_o and_o then_o by_o their_o good_a work_n they_o can_v satisfy_v for_o their_o small_a offence_n second_o they_o have_v such_o a_o worth_n that_o god_n be_v tie_v say_v some_o of_o they_o by_o the_o debt_n of_o justice_n other_o say_v by_o the_o debt_n of_o gratitude_n to_o bestow_v upon_o they_o everlasting_a glory_n some_o say_v they_o deserve_v this_o ex_fw-la natura_fw-la operis_fw-la other_o say_v tincta_fw-la sanguine_fw-la christi_fw-la be_v die_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o damnable_a doctrine_n throw_v we_o off_o from_o the_o head_n to_o hold_v justification_n by_o work_n our_o good_a work_n as_o they_o flow_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o we_o do_v not_o yet_o merit_v heaven_n 1._o from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o worker_n though_o we_o be_v never_o so_o much_o enable_v yet_o we_o be_v in_o such_o a_o state_n and_o condition_n that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v more_o than_o we_o do_v or_o can_v do_v luk._n 17._o 7._o we_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n unless_o we_o be_v make_v son_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n and_o the_o more_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n enable_v we_o to_o good_a the_o more_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v thankful_a rather_o then_o to_o glory_n in_o ourselves_o again_o we_o be_v sinner_n the_o worker_n be_v a_o servant_n son_n sinner_n can_v merit_v 2._o from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o work_n those_o work_v that_o merit_n heaven_n must_v have_v a_o equality_n and_o commensuration_n as_o a_o just_a price_n to_o the_o thing_n buy_v but_o our_o work_n be_v not_o so_o rom._n 8._o 18._o those_o suffering_n be_v the_o most_o glorious_a of_o all_o when_o paul_n be_v whip_v imprison_v venture_v his_o life_n he_o do_v not_o account_v these_o thing_n considerable_a in_o respect_n of_o heaven_n see_v rom._n 8._o 18._o jam._n 3._o 2._o 1_o joh._n 1._o 8._o rom._n 7._o 24._o &_o 11._o 35_o 36._o ephes._n 2._o 8._o and_o d._n sâlat_n on_o rom._n 2._o p._n 118._o to_o 185._o they_o say_v the_o protestant_n so_o cry_v up_o justification_n by_o grace_n that_o they_o cry_v down_o all_o 16._o good_a work_n at_o least_o the_o reward_n of_o they_o we_o say_v there_o be_v a_o reward_n of_o mercy_n psa._n 62._o lat_fw-la end_n bona_fw-la opera_fw-la non_fw-la praecedunt_fw-la justificandum_fw-la sed_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la justificatum_fw-la aug._n bona_fw-la opera_fw-la suxt_n occultae_fw-la praedestinationis_fw-la indicia_fw-la futurae_fw-la foelicitatis_fw-la praesagia_fw-la bernard_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la &_o libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la extra_n statum_fw-la justificationis_fw-la nemo_fw-la potest_fw-la verè_fw-la bona_fw-la opena_fw-la satis_fw-la magnificè_fw-la commendare_fw-la luther_n more_o have_v be_v give_v in_o this_o land_n within_o these_o threescore_o year_n to_o the_o 96._o building_n and_o increase_n of_o hospital_n of_o college_n and_o other_o school_n of_o good_a learning_n and_o to_o such_o like_a work_n as_o be_v true_o charitable_a then_o be_v in_o any_o one_o hundred_o year_n during_o all_o the_o time_n and_o reign_n of_o popery_n dr._n willet_n confute_v the_o calumny_n of_o the_o romanist_n charge_v our_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 1._o by_o faith_n only_o as_o a_o great_a adversary_n to_o good_a work_n for_o he_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o space_n of_o sixty_o year_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1000000_o lb_n have_v be_v bestow_v in_o the_o act_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n whether_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o inherent_a or_o impute_a righteousness_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v as_o the_o papist_n false_o slander_v we_o all_o inherent_a righteousness_n 6._o 2_o cor._n 5._o 17._o nor_o all_o justification_n before_o god_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n 1_o king_n 8._o 32._o but_o this_o we_o teach_v that_o this_o inherent_a righteousness_n be_v not_o that_o righteousness_n whereby_o any_o poor_a sinner_n in_o this_o life_n can_v be_v justify_v before_o god_n tribunal_n for_o which_o he_o be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v innocent_a absolve_v from_o death_n and_o condemnation_n and_o adjudge_v unto_o eternal_a life_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v not_o this_o foundation_n viz._n the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o 1._o they_o deny_v justification_n by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n yea_o they_o scorn_v it_o and_o call_v it_o a_o putative_a righteousness_n 2._o they_o hold_v justification_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o be_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n gal._n 5._o 4._o the_o papist_n 4._o place_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n in_o the_o insusion_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n the_o opinion_n be_v build_v upon_o another_o opinion_n as_o rot_a as_o it_o viz._n perfection_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n for_o if_o this_o be_v find_v to_o be_v imperfect_a as_o it_o will_v be_v always_o in_o this_o life_n the_o credit_n of_o the_o other_o opinion_n be_v lose_v and_o that_o by_o consent_n of_o their_o own_o principle_n who_o teach_v that_o in_o justification_n man_n be_v make_v
infant_n be_v comprehend_v under_o house_n and_o family_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n gen._n 14._o 16._o &_o 18._o 19_o prov._n 31._o 15._o luke_n 19_o 9_o act_n 11._o 16._o &_o 16._o 31._o parent_n must_v bring_v their_o child_n therefore_o to_o baptism_n with_o a_o high_a esteem_n of_o that_o ordinance_n and_o with_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o god_n for_o his_o blessing_n upon_o it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v effectual_a for_o their_o regeneration_n set_a a_o day_n at_o least_o some_o good_a time_n apart_o new-birth_n to_o seek_v the_o face_n of_o god_n to_o confess_v thy_o sin_n chief_o the_o original_a sin_n which_o thou_o have_v derive_v to_o thy_o infant_n lament_v it_o in_o thyself_o and_o lament_v it_o in_o and_o for_o he_o baptism_n can_v be_v reiterated_a as_o the_o lord_n supper_n therefore_o what_o thou_o can_v do_v but_o once_o for_o thy_o child_n be_v careful_a to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n parent_n shall_v offer_v their_o child_n to_o god_n in_o baptism_n 1._o with_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o god_n for_o a_o blessing_n on_o his_o ordinance_n 2._o in_o faith_n plead_v your_o right_n with_o god_n he_o have_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o his_o people_n and_o of_o their_o seed_n there_o be_v promise_n which_o suit_n with_o the_o ordinance_n deut._n 13._o 6._o isa._n 44._o 3._o 3._o with_o reverence_n gen._n 17._o 2_o 3._o 2_o sam._n 7._o 18_o 19_o their_o heart_n shall_v be_v affect_v with_o that_o great_a privilege_n that_o god_n shall_v take_v themselves_o and_o their_o seed_n into_o the_o covenant_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n without_o a_o weighty_a cause_n and_o in_o a_o sort_n compel_v be_v not_o to_o be_v defer_v 41._o first_o because_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o eight_o day_n appoint_v for_o circumcision_n hinder_v the_o procrastination_n of_o it_o second_o because_o this_o delay_n of_o it_o show_v a_o kind_n of_o contempt_n of_o the_o ordinance_n it_o be_v a_o common_a but_o a_o erroneous_a practice_n even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o defer_v their_o baptism_n till_o they_o be_v old_a so_o some_o of_o the_o christian_a emperor_n because_o a_o opinion_n prevail_v upon_o they_o that_o baptism_n discharge_v they_o of_o all_o sin_n i_o think_v that_o the_o delay_n of_o baptism_n which_o constantine_n and_o some_o other_o be_v guilty_a of_o do_v creep_v in_o among_o other_o corruption_n and_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o those_o heretic_n that_o deny_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o that_o fall_v after_o baptism_n which_o affright_v poor_a people_n from_o that_o speedy_a use_n of_o it_o which_o the_o scripture_n prescribe_v mr_n baxt._n inf._n church-memb_a par_fw-fr 2._o c._n 15._o constantine_n much_o esteem_v and_o favour_v eusebius_n who_o be_v a_o very_a subtle_a and_o malicious_a arian_n and_o yet_o constantine_n even_o to_o his_o death_n extreme_o hate_v and_o detest_a arianism_n one_o token_n of_o which_o love_n be_v his_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n at_o his_o hand_n when_o he_o be_v extreme_o sick_a and_o near_o his_o death_n crakanth_n defence_n of_o constant._n c._n 6._o see_v p._n 80._o to_o 86._o &_o 92_o 93._o but_o constantine_n receive_v baptism_n at_o eusebius_n his_o hand_n when_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n professor_n and_o earnest_n in_o that_o profession_n the_o apostle_n and_o christ_n himself_o hold_v communion_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n with_o judas_n matth._n 26._o 23._o etc._n etc._n so_o long_o as_o he_o keep_v the_o outward_a and_o catholic_a profession_n though_o in_o his_o heart_n he_o be_v a_o apostata_fw-la yea_o devil_n id._n ib._n p._n 96_o 97._o chrysostom_n and_o gregory_n nazianzen_n say_v grotius_n be_v not_o baptize_v till_o they_o be_v twenty_o year_n old_a at_o least_o plerosque_fw-la baptismum_fw-la suum_fw-la distulisse_fw-la in_o articulum_fw-la mortis_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la notissima_fw-la ex_fw-la historia_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la unde_fw-la clinicorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la maresius_n de_fw-fr precibus_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la augustine_n jerome_n and_o ambrose_n be_v baptize_v when_o grow_v up_o man_n yea_o but_o when_o they_o better_o understand_v the_o point_n they_o disallow_v neglect_n of_o child_n baptism_n as_o the_o parent_n sin_n as_o jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o laeta_n and_o augustine_n frequent_o and_o so_o ambrose_n all_o one_o for_o poedobaptisme_n as_o a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o so_o as_o count_v it_o sin_n to_o neglect_v it_o cobbet_n of_o baptism_n part_n 2._o sect._n 5._o some_o hold_n that_o only_a infant_n of_o church-member_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v but_o although_o the_o parent_n of_o those_o infant_n be_v not_o member_n of_o any_o particular_a baptize_v church_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o they_o be_v certain_o if_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o administer_a of_o baptism_n to_o their_o infant_n otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o difference_n between_o their_o infant_n and_o the_o infant_n of_o turk_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v we_o admit_v child_n to_o baptism_n 1._o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o remote_a parent_n who_o may_v be_v good_a though_o their_o immediate_a parent_n be_v bad_a act._n 2._o 39_o 2._o they_o may_v be_v admit_v by_o stipulation_n of_o other_o to_o see_v they_o educate_v in_o the_o faith_n into_o which_o they_o be_v baptize_v be_v the_o parent_n themselves_o never_o so_o wicked_a vide_fw-la 15._o ames_n cas._n consc._n l._n 4._o c._n 27._o whether_o the_o use_n of_o witness_n be_v necessary_a peter_n martyr_n in_o loc_n commun_n call_v it_o utile_fw-la institutum_fw-la a_o profitable_a constitution_n in_o ancient_a time_n the_o parent_n of_o child_n which_o be_v heathen_a and_o new_o convert_v to_o christian_a religion_n be_v either_o ignorant_a and_o can_v not_o or_o careless_a and_o will_v not_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n agreeable_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o new_o profess_v hence_o it_o be_v think_v meet_a that_o some_o person_n of_o good_a knowledge_n and_o life_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o witness_v the_o baptism_n and_o promise_v their_o care_n for_o the_o child_n education_n it_o be_v a_o ancient_a commendable_a practice_n continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n above_o the_o space_n of_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n m._n perk._n cas._n of_o consc._n it_o be_v but_o a_o bare_a prudential_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v hyginus_n of_o rome_n that_o first_o bring_v in_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 140._o as_o platina_n and_o other_o write_v or_o some_o other_o it_o be_v not_o great_o material_a ford_z of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o man_n vide_fw-la zepperum_fw-la de_fw-la sac._n some_o urge_v isa._n 8._o 1_o 2_o 3._o for_o it_o because_o from_o the_o beginning_n those_o that_o be_v of_o year_n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v be_v ask_v divers_a question_n whether_o they_o believe_v whether_o they_o renounce_v the_o devil_n the_o same_o custom_n also_o remain_v even_o then_o when_o infant_n alone_o be_v offer_v and_o the_o papist_n can_v be_v move_v from_o thence_o chamier_n de_fw-mi canone_o lib._n 11._o c._n 9_o the_o church_n by_o a_o unadvised_a imitation_n draw_v the_o interrogatory_n minister_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o those_o which_o be_v of_o year_n to_o profess_v their_o faith_n in_o baptism_n unto_o young_a child_n cartw._n on_o mat._n 3._o whether_o the_o immediate_a or_o remote_a parent_n give_v the_o child_n a_o right_a to_o baptism_n some_o parent_n say_v immediate_a parent_n only_o can_v give_v the_o child_n a_o right_a because_o if_o we_o go_v high_o to_o remote_a parent_n where_o shall_v we_o then_o stop_v may_v we_o go_v to_o noah_n or_o adam_n say_v they_o where_o shall_v we_o stay_v why_o may_v not_o the_o child_n of_o jew_n and_o turk_n than_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n since_o they_o former_o descend_v from_o believer_n this_o objection_n carry_v some_o force_n with_o it_o and_o there_o be_v a_o very_a strong_a objection_n likewise_o against_o this_o opinion_n since_o those_o for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o maintain_v this_o say_v the_o parent_n that_o give_v the_o federal_a right_n to_o their_o child_n must_v be_v visible_a saint_n or_o church-member_n as_o they_o phrase_v it_o the_o argument_n than_o be_v this_o the_o wickedness_n of_o a_o jew_n can_v not_o prejudice_v the_o child_n right_a that_o be_v to_o be_v circumcise_v therefore_o neither_o the_o wickedness_n of_o a_o christian_a a_o child_n right_a that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o whether_o their_o baptism_n be_v not_o null_a which_o have_v no_o right_n and_o so_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v shall_v be_v serious_o consider_v by_o they_o that_o hold_v that_o tenet_n quest._n what_o if_o the_o
immediate_a parent_n be_v believer_n only_o in_o show_n answ._n 1._o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a 2._o child_n have_v right_a to_o baptism_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n in_o who_o we_o have_v as_o true_a a_o interest_n as_o the_o jew_n ever_o have_v act._n 8._o 12_o 13_o 38._o with_o 10._o 47._o gal._n 3._o 29._o rom._n 11._o 17._o so_o that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o immediate_a parent_n do_v not_o prejudice_v the_o right_n of_o the_o child_n for_o then_o hezekiah_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v circumcise_v because_o he_o have_v a_o wicked_a father_n master_n lyford_v principle_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a conscience_n chap._n 49._o object_n the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a only_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v because_o only_o those_o infant_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n and_o only_o holy_a answ._n 1._o we_o be_v not_o to_o regard_v the_o ungodliness_n of_o such_o as_o be_v their_o natural_a parent_n of_o who_o they_o be_v beget_v but_o the_o godliness_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o and_o of_o who_o they_o be_v bear_v for_o the_o church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v their_o mother_n 2._o we_o must_v consider_v not_o only_o their_o immediate_a parent_n but_o their_o forefather_n and_o ancestor_n which_o have_v lead_v a_o godly_a life_n rom._n 11._o 16._o by_o the_o name_n of_o root_n in_o that_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o next_o parent_n who_o peradventure_o be_v profane_a and_o ungodly_a but_o those_o first_o parent_n of_o that_o people_n viz._n abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v and_o the_o covenant_n confirm_v they_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v who_o in_o charity_n may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n such_o be_v all_o that_o profess_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o also_o their_o child_n act._n 10._o 45._o 1_o cor._n 7._o 14._o d._n gouge_n his_o catechism_n parent_n be_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o profession_n of_o christian_a religion_n their_o child_n be_v within_o the_o covenant_n ezek._n 18._o 20._o so_o that_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o parent_n prejudice_v not_o the_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n 2._o by_o parent_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o those_o alone_o of_o who_o child_n be_v immediate_o beget_v and_o bear_v but_o their_o progenitor_n and_o ancestor_n also_o who_o fear_v god_n and_o live_v in_o the_o church_n though_o many_o generation_n before_o for_o god_n make_v not_o his_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n and_o his_o immediate_a seed_n only_o but_o with_o all_o his_o seed_n after_o they_o in_o their_o generation_n gen._n 17._o 7._o last_o be_v the_o next_o parent_n whosoever_o they_o will_v be_v yet_o their_o child_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v their_o mother_n and_o the_o faith_n and_o piety_n of_o the_o church_n invest_v such_o as_o be_v bear_v in_o she_o unto_o the_o covenant_n down_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o infant_n either_o by_o baptism_n man_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o no_o church_n but_o not_o into_o the_o particular_a congregation_n no_o man_n be_v baptize_v into_o the_o particular_a congregation_n it_o be_v not_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o particular_a covenant_n therefore_o it_o be_v into_o the_o whole_a or_o none_o if_o a_o heathen_a be_v convert_v in_o a_o congregation_n first_o he_o receive_v baptism_n afterward_o be_v admit_v a_o member_n of_o the_o particular_a congregation_n m._n huds_n vindicat._n c._n 5._o see_v he_o c._n 6._o p._n 134_o 142._o a_o baptize_v person_n be_v baptize_v not_o to_o that_o particular_a church_n only_o but_o to_o all_o church_n and_o in_o every_o particular_a church_n where_o he_o come_v he_o have_v all_o the_o privilege_n of_o a_o baptize_v person_n all_o circumcise_a person_n have_v right_o thereby_o to_o eat_v the_o passeover_n in_o any_o society_n exod._n 12._o 4_o 48._o deut._n 16._o 1_o 2._o in_o the_o place_n where_o 4._o god_n shall_v choose_v to_o put_v his_o name_n there_o so_o all_o baptize_v person_n have_v right_a to_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o every_o church_n where_o god_n have_v set_v his_o name_n m._n ainsworth_n to_o m._n paget_n seal_v the_o promise_n by_o a_o initial_a sacrament_n be_v not_o only_o in_o reference_n to_o a_o particular_a church_n either_o national_a or_o congregational_n but_o principal_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n church_n divine_a warrant_n of_o inf._n bapt._n m._n ball_n in_o his_o catechism_n have_v this_o passage_n baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o our_o engraff_n into_o christ_n communion_n with_o he_o and_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n for_o which_o he_o cit_v matth._n 28._o 19_o act_n 8._o 38._o and_o afterward_o explain_v himself_o it_o do_v say_v he_o solemn_o signify_v and_o seal_v their_o engraff_n into_o christ_n and_o confirm_v that_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enter_v into_o it_o and_o that_o we_o be_v thereby_o admit_v member_n not_o of_o a_o particular_a congregation_n but_o the_o catholic_n church_n appear_v because_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o see_v m._n huds_n ib._n quaest._n 2._o p._n 239._o see_v p._n 238._o whether_o the_o child_n of_o infidel_n viz._n jew_n turk_n and_o pagan_n may_v be_v baptize_v baldwin_n a_o luther_n a_o cas._n cons_n l._n 4._o c._n 8._o case_z 8_o maintain_v it_o lawful_a to_o baptize_v the_o child_n of_o profess_a infidel_n if_o jure_fw-la belli_fw-la 4._o or_o the_o like_a way_n they_o come_v to_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o christian_n but_o he_o say_v si_fw-la infans_fw-la valetudinis_fw-la sit_fw-la satis_fw-la firmae_fw-la utile_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la prius_fw-la in_o principiis_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la christianae_n instituatur_fw-la quam_fw-la ad_fw-la baptismum_fw-la afferatur_fw-la rivet_n on_o gen._n 17._o allow_v the_o baptise_v of_o the_o child_n of_o mere_a pagan_n if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o christian_n to_o dispose_v of_o they_o as_o their_o own_o in_o that_o abraham_n servant_n buy_v with_o money_n or_o bear_v in_o his_o house_n be_v to_o be_v circumcise_v there_o be_v a_o large_a promise_n to_o abraham_n stretch_v covenant_n to_o his_o seed_n not_o only_o to_o the_o child_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o to_o his_o proselyte_n servant_n but_o also_o to_o all_o they_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o his_o house_n or_o buy_v with_o money_n gen._n 17._o 12_o 13._o which_o happy_o may_v grant_v so_o much_o liberty_n to_o a_o christian_a sponsor_n that_o if_o a_o stranger_n or_o wicked_a man_n shall_v give_v he_o his_o child_n from_o his_o infancy_n to_o be_v bring_v up_o as_o his_o own_o it_o may_v be_v baptize_v as_o his_o own_o whether_o the_o child_n of_o papist_n may_v be_v baptize_v 10._o many_o hold_v that_o the_o child_n of_o papist_n be_v either_o offer_v by_o they_o or_o in_o the_o tuition_n of_o other_o be_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o baptism_n since_o the_o papist_n though_o gross_o erroneous_a do_v profess_v the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n baptism_n celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_a baptism_n because_o albeit_o the_o papacy_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n yet_o the_o true_a church_n be_v in_o the_o papacy_n god_n preserve_v the_o remnant_n of_o it_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o bowel_n of_o antichrist_n attersol_n of_o the_o sacrament_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o see_v cap._n 6._o vide_fw-la balduinum_fw-la de_fw-la cas._n consc._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 8._o cas._n 7._o i_o dare_v not_o whole_o take_v away_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n from_o rome_n i_o know_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o baptism_n can_v be_v administer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o when_o the_o entire_a form_n of_o baptism_n be_v observe_v st_n augustine_n be_v resolve_v non_fw-la haereticus_fw-la sed_fw-la haeretici_fw-la manu_fw-la christus_fw-la baptizat_fw-la therefore_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a determine_v very_o grave_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o rebaptisation_n of_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n doctor_n hampton_n in_o his_o sermon_n on_o 1_o john_n 2._o 19_o although_o there_o be_v many_o devise_n of_o man_n sinful_o annex_v to_o baptism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o some_o wicked_a opinion_n erroneous_o hold_v concern_v it_o among_o they_o yet_o baptism_n both_o be_v there_o rom._n 6._o 34._o &_o 1._o 7._o as_o god_n ordinance_n before_o these_o corruption_n and_o error_n and_o so_o have_v be_v continue_v in_o that_o church_n to_o this_o day_n and_o ought_v also_o still_o to_o be_v retain_v the_o corruption_n only_o and_o the_o error_n be_v renounce_v and_o reject_v johnsons_n christian_a plea_n ch_n 3._o p._n 53._o there_o be_v one_o baptism_n as_o there_o be_v
to_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n a_o devil_n a_o traitor_n yet_o admit_v he_o to_o be_v at_o the_o last_o passeover_n which_o ever_o he_o receive_v though_o not_o to_o the_o supper_n for_o that_o be_v not_o administer_v till_o his_o departure_n not_o because_o it_o have_v be_v unlawful_a to_o have_v receive_v with_o he_o because_o the_o lord_n who_o command_v his_o worship_n never_o put_v in_o any_o such_o limitation_n and_o exception_n unless_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v present_a object_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o as_o so_o know_v the_o theft_n and_o hollowness_n of_o judas_n and_o therefore_o his_o example_n in_o this_o case_n can_v be_v our_o warrant_n answ._n though_o he_o do_v know_v as_o god_n his_o wickedness_n yet_o he_o do_v receive_v the_o passeover_n with_o he_o as_o man_n and_o how_o he_o come_v by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o faultinesse_n it_o matter_n not_o since_o he_o know_v he_o faulty_a therefore_o our_o saviour_n also_o go_v up_o to_o the_o usual_a feast_n and_o to_o the_o temple_n when_o he_o be_v sure_a to_o meet_v there_o with_o the_o most_o abominable_a scribe_n and_o pharisee_n 1_o sam._n 2._o 2._o hannah_n and_o elkanah_n go_v up_o to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n to_o shiloh_n to_o worship_v there_o with_o the_o son_n of_o eli_n hophni_n and_o phineas_n there_o not_o alone_o with_o wicked_a people_n but_o priest_n they_o do_v partake_v in_o divine_a service_n some_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v out_o of_o 1_o sam._n 2._o 17._o that_o wicked_a man_n by_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n do_v pollute_v it_o because_o the_o sinful_a carriage_n of_o eli_n son_n cause_v man_n magistracy_n to_o abhor_v the_o offering_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o note_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o offering_n become_v abominable_a because_o they_o offer_v not_o the_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n they_o will_v not_o have_v sodden_a flesh_n but_o raw_a if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v corrupt_v if_o it_o be_v celebrate_v under_o one_o kind_n if_o water_n be_v mingle_v with_o wine_n this_o be_v to_o pollute_v the_o ordinance_n object_n we_o be_v command_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o wicked_a and_o to_o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o 2_o cor._n 6._o 17._o answ._n we_o must_v indeed_o come_v out_o from_o among_o those_o which_o do_v serve_v false_a god_n and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o familiar_a society_n of_o wicked_a person_n but_o other_o separation_n be_v never_o practise_v by_o any_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n or_o ever_o mean_v immediate_o there_o it_o follow_v touch_v not_o the_o unclean_a thing_n that_o be_v do_v not_o join_v with_o other_o in_o their_o pollution_n ephes._n 5._o 6_o 7_o 11._o some_o say_v he_o speak_v to_o professor_n of_o christian_a religion_n concern_v heathen_n to_o leave_v familiar_a fellowship_n with_o they_o as_o join_v in_o marriage_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v the_o thing_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o immediate_o before_o to_o have_v none_o good_a be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o church_n malignant_a to_o have_v all_o good_a and_o none_o bad_a be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a to_o have_v some_o good_a and_o some_o bad_a be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a man_n open_o wicked_a and_o scandalous_a shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o congregation_n of_o saint_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o because_o such_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o and_o be_v not_o therefore_o other_o shall_v abstain_v from_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o brownist_n abstain_v from_o come_v to_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n among_o we_o because_o many_o open_o profane_a and_o know_v wicked_a man_n be_v admit_v to_o our_o assembly_n therefore_o they_o think_v they_o can_v with_o good_a conscience_n serve_v god_n with_o such_o person_n but_o no_o good_a man_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v therefore_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o temple_n or_o their_o synagogue_n see_v m._n hilders_n on_o john_n 4._o 22._o this_o ordinance_n say_v m._n burroughes_n communion_n must_v be_v receive_v in_o a_o holy_a communion_n or_o in_o a_o communion_n of_o saint_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o therefore_o all_o that_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n must_v so_o come_v as_o they_o must_v be_v one_o body_n one_o spiritual_a corporation_n this_o sacrament_n say_v he_o 38._o be_v not_o defile_v to_o the_o right_a receiver_n of_o it_o mere_o because_o wicked_a man_n be_v present_a there_o but_o because_o the_o congregation_n neglect_v their_o duty_n of_o cast_v out_o the_o wicked_a from_o thence_o when_o they_o discover_v themselves_o the_o example_n of_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a 1_o cor._n 5._o say_v he_o be_v a_o plain_a place_n for_o it_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n the_o lump_n there_o be_v the_o church_n communion_n and_o the_o leaven_v the_o incestuous_a person_n while_o this_o leaven_n continue_v if_o you_o do_v not_o your_o duty_n to_o cast_v out_o this_o scandalous_a person_n your_o whole_a lump_n your_o whole_a communion_n will_v come_v to_o be_v defile_v particular_a person_n and_o communicant_n come_v to_o be_v defile_v in_o this_o if_o they_o neglect_v the_o duty_n that_o belong_v unto_o they_o as_o christian_n matth._n 18._o 15_o 16_o 17._o if_o thou_o âast_v do_v this_o duty_n to_o all_o scandalous_a person_n in_o the_o congregation_n than_o the_o sin_n be_v upon_o the_o church_n thou_o may_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n with_o comfort_n though_o wicked_a man_n be_v admit_v there_o as_o i_o never_o find_v one_o word_n in_o scripture_n where_o either_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n deny_v admittance_n to_o any_o man_n that_o desire_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n though_o but_o only_o profess_v to_o repent_v and_o believe_v so_o neither_o do_v i_o ever_o there_o find_v that_o any_o but_o convict_a heretic_n or_o scandalous_a one_o and_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n after_o due_a admonition_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v or_o debar_v our_o fellowship_n m._n baxters_n saint_n everlasting_a rest_n c._n 4._o sect._n 3_o see_v more_o there_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o congregation_n be_v not_o pollute_v by_o the_o mixture_n of_o unworthy_a person_n with_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v consent_v to_o their_o wickedness_n no_o more_o then_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o hear_v and_o prayer_n with_o the_o wicked_a in_o a_o mix_a congregation_n m._n lâfo_n princip_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a consc._n c._n 52._o for_o that_o objection_n a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n evang._n answ._n this_o be_v a_o metaphorical_a speech_n the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v not_o that_o one_o or_o two_o sinner_n cause_v the_o whole_a congregation_n to_o be_v so_o corrupt_a and_o unpleasing_a to_o god_n that_o whosoever_o join_v with_o they_o be_v pollute_v but_o alone_o this_o one_o sinner_n suffer_v and_o not_o punish_v the_o infection_n spread_v far_a and_o far_o objection_n we_o be_v command_v not_o to_o eat_v with_o a_o brother_n if_o he_o be_v so_o and_o so_o answ._n it_o signify_v to_o have_v familiar_a civil_a society_n with_o they_o in_o invite_v they_o more_o or_o feast_v they_o but_o if_o one_o may_v not_o have_v familiar_a civil_a conversation_n with_o such_o much_o less_o may_v he_o eat_v with_o they_o at_o the_o sacrament_n it_o follow_v not_o for_o in_o withdraw_a ourselves_o from_o they_o we_o punish_v they_o and_o show_v our_o dislike_n of_o they_o but_o in_o withdraw_a ourselves_o from_o the_o sacrament_n because_o of_o they_o we_o punish_v ourselves_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o hophni_n and_o phineas_n be_v a_o mix_a multitude_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o they_o plot_v christ_n death_n and_o have_v decree_v to_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n every_o one_o that_o shall_v confess_v he_o mr_n downame_n contaminari_fw-la say_v none_o ought_v to_o refrain_v come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n because_o they_o see_v scandalous_a sinner_n and_o unworthy_a guest_n admit_v for_o 1._o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 28._o do_v not_o enjoin_v we_o to_o examine_v other_o but_o ourselves_o 2._o because_o the_o apostle_n yea_o even_a christ_n himself_o do_v join_v with_o those_o assembly_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v full_a of_o corruption_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n as_o viz._n this_o church_n of_o corinth_n itself_o see_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 21._o the_o word_n usual_o signify_v to_o be_v drink_v and_o here_o they_o be_v sharp_o reprove_v for_o a_o great_a fault_n 3._o because_o one_o man_n sin_n can_v defile_v another_o nor_o make_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n uneffectual_a to_o he_o who_o come_v in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o even_o hate_v that_o sin_n which_o he_o see_v commit_v
repentance_n when_o god_n call_v his_o people_n to_o renew_v their_o covenant_n there_o be_v a_o special_a humiliation_n before_o ezra_n 8._o 21._o isa._n 6._o when_o joshua_n be_v call_v to_o build_v the_o 1._o temple_n and_o be_v a_o high-priest_n to_o god_n zech._n 3_o when_o they_o be_v to_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v to_o examine_v themselves_o thorough_o and_o judge_v themselves_o so_o exod._n 19_o 14._o else_o our_o unworthiness_n may_v stand_v as_o a_o bar_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o comfortable_o go_v on_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 35._o begin_v four_o when_o we_o look_v to_o receive_v any_o special_a mercy_n when_o we_o either_o need_n or_o expect_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o promise_n that_o god_n will_v do_v some_o great_a thing_n for_o we_o as_o isaac_n when_o he_o look_v for_o his_o father_n servant_n to_o return_v with_o a_o wife_n dan._n 9_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v the_o humble_a exercise_n of_o repentance_n that_o we_o read_v of_o the_o occasion_n be_v he_o expect_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v now_o break_v the_o babylonian_a yoke_n moses_n call_v the_o people_n to_o deep_a humiliation_n and_o repentance_n when_o they_o be_v to_o possess_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n five_o the_o time_n of_o death_n when_o we_o expect_v our_o change_n then_o be_v a_o special_a time_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o repentance_n that_o be_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o finish_v then_o begin_v repentance_n 45._o than_o we_o shall_v special_o look_v to_o our_o heart_n and_o examine_v our_o way_n it_o be_v the_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n that_o their_o last_o work_n be_v best_o and_o it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v to_o do_v with_o repentance_n we_o carry_v love_n and_o joy_n to_o heaven_n and_o most_o of_o the_o grace_n except_o faith_n and_o hope_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o use_n of_o they_o when_o we_o go_v hence_o we_o go_v to_o the_o great_a communion_n with_o god_n that_o the_o creature_n be_v capable_a of_o esther_n the_o night_n or_o two_o before_o she_o go_v to_o lie_v with_o ahashuerus_n be_v most_o careful_a to_o have_v her_o body_n perfume_v and_o oil_v motive_n to_o provoke_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o repentance_n two_o especial_o which_o be_v 10._o the_o great_a motive_n to_o any_o duty_n 1._o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o utility_n of_o it_o i._o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o repentance_n be_v necessary_a to_o remission_n 1._o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la ezek._n 18._o 30._o 2._o necessitate_v medii_fw-la one_o must_v condemn_v his_o sin_n and_o loathe_v himself_o and_o prize_v a_o pardon_n afore_o he_o obtain_v it_o ezek._n 20._o 43._o luke_n 7._o 47._o the_o schoolman_n demand_v why_o repentance_n shall_v not_o make_v god_n satisfaction_n because_o it_o have_v god_n for_o its_o object_n as_o well_o as_o sin_n 2_o cor._n 7._o 10._o the_o offence_n take_v it_o measure_v from_o the_o object_n the_o good_a duty_n from_o the_o subject_n therefore_o christ_n only_o can_v make_v satisfaction_n it_o be_v necessary_a because_o every_o man_n must_v appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n and_o receive_v a_o everlasting_a doom_n and_o our_o plea_n must_v then_o be_v either_o that_o we_o have_v not_o sin_v or_o else_o that_o we_o have_v repent_v except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o perish_v while_o one_o remain_v impenitent_a his_o person_n and_o service_n be_v abominable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n isa._n 1._o &_o isa._n 66._o liable_a to_o all_o the_o curse_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n the_o jew_n have_v a_o proverb_n say_v drusius_n uno_n die_v ante_fw-la mortem_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la agas_fw-la repent_v one_o day_n before_o death_n that_o be_v every_o day_n because_o thou_o may_v die_v tomorrow_o there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o repentance_n for_o a_o fruitful_a and_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n first_o without_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a desire_n to_o come_v to_o this_o supper_n faith_n be_v the_o hand_n repentance_n the_o stomach_n by_o a_o sight_n of_o sin_n we_o see_v our_o want_n and_o need_v of_o christ._n second_o without_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o fitness_n to_o receive_v christ._n we_o must_v eat_v this_o passeover_n with_o bitter_a herb_n three_o all_o shall_v labour_v to_o have_v assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n without_o repentance_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n act._n 5._o 31._o four_o because_o sin_n be_v of_o a_o soil_a nature_n and_o do_v deâile_a god_n ordinance_n to_o a_o man_n soul_n and_o if_o we_o come_v in_o sin_n we_o can_v profit_v by_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n ii_o the_o utility_n of_o it_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o shall_v work_v on_o our_o fear_n the_o utility_n of_o it_o on_o our_o love_n the_o two_o great_a passion_n of_o the_o soul._n first_o it_o be_v infinite_o please_v to_o almighty_a god_n luke_n 15._o per_fw-mi totum_fw-la the_o intent_n antinomian_o of_o three_o parable_n there_o be_v to_o show_v what_o content_n it_o be_v to_o god_n to_o see_v a_o sinner_n to_o turn_v from_o his_o evil_a way_n he_o that_o have_v lose_v his_o groat_n his_o sheep_n and_o the_o prodigal_a son_n second_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o be_v unspeakable_a to_o thy_o own_o soul._n 1._o it_o will_v remove_v all_o evil_n 1._o spiritual_a all_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o defilement_n of_o it_o 1_o john_n 1._o let_fw-mi end_n isa._n 1._o 16_o 17_o 18._o no_o more_o prejudice_n lie_v against_o thou_o than_o if_o thou_o have_v never_o sin_v against_o he_o marry_o magdalen_n be_v infamous_a for_o her_o uncleanness_n yet_o christ_n first_o appear_v to_o she_o after_o he_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a all_o the_o curse_n due_a to_o sin_n be_v lay_v on_o christ._n 2._o outward_a evil_n when_o i_o speak_v concern_v a_o nation_n if_o they_o repent_v i_o will_v repent_v of_o all_o the_o evil_n i_o think_v to_o do_v see_v joel_n 2._o 2._o bâing_v all_o good_a it_o bring_v god_n favour_n that_o flow_v on_o the_o soul_n god_n have_v promise_v grace_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o such_o jer._n 3._o 13_o 14_o 15._o prov._n 1._o 23._o temporal_a blessing_n job_n 22._o everlasting_a life_n be_v their_o portion_n it_o be_v call_v repentance_n unto_o life_n act._n 11._o 18._o unto_o salvation_n 2_o cor._n â1_n 10._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n conduce_v to_o that_o end_n mean_n of_o repentance_n 1._o diligent_o study_v to_o know_v how_o miserable_a your_o state_n be_v without_o it_o read_v over_o thy_o do_n that_o have_v not_o be_v good_a every_o day_n see_v the_o evil_a and_o danger_n of_o sin_n act_v 2._o 21._o &_o 3._o 17_o 18._o &_o 26._o 18._o jer._n 31._o 18._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 25._o 2._o repentance_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 12._o he_o grant_v also_o repentance_n to_o the_o gentile_n beg_v earnest_o at_o god_n hand_n that_o he_o will_v make_v sin_n bitter_a to_o thou_o and_o cause_v thou_o to_o hate_v it_o zech._n 12._o they_o mourn_v apart_o then_o god_n pour_v on_o the_o house_n of_o david_n the_o spirit_n of_o supplication_n jer._n 3._o 18._o turn_v i_o lord_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v turn_v 3._o attend_v upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o repentance_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o law_n god_n word_n be_v a_o hammer_n to_o break_v the_o hard_a heart_n especial_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o discovery_n of_o christ_n they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v rom._n 2._o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n shall_v lead_v thou_o to_o repentance_n 4._o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o thou_o see_v thyself_o lose_v and_o undo_v venture_v thyself_o upon_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n faith_n in_o christ_n will_v purify_v the_o heart_n act_v 15._o that_o be_v instrumental_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o principal_a agent_n you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o faith_n three_o thing_n be_v require_v in_o repentance_n 1._o the_o sight_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n 2._o hearty_n and_o continual_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n by_o consider_v the_o filthiness_n and_o desert_n of_o it_o god_n judgement_n due_a for_o sin_n his_o mercy_n bestow_v on_o we_o christ_n suffering_n for_o our_o sin_n our_o own_o unthankfulness_n notwithstanding_o god_n benefit_n 3._o amendment_n a_o utter_a and_o well-advised_a forsake_v of_o all_o sin_n in_o affection_n and_o of_o gross_a sin_n in_o life_n and_o conversation_n renew_v of_o repentance_n lie_v 1._o in_o renew_v a_o man_n humiliation_n and_o godly_a sorrow_n 2._o in_o renew_v his_o obligation_n to_o duty_n the_o
to_o testify_v their_o affection_n and_o duty_n towards_o he_o master_n down_o of_o 3_o vow_n a_o bind_v of_o one_o self_n to_o god_n by_o a_o solemn_a promise_n or_o rather_o oath_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v something_o lawful_a possible_a and_o useful_a for_o our_o increase_n in_o godliness_n to_o vow_v swear_v and_o to_o covenant_n say_v some_o be_v in_o scripture_n equivalent_a import_v the_o same_o thing_n numb_a 30._o 2._o 1_o sam._n 22._o 16_o 17._o it_o be_v call_v a_o covenant_n 2_o king_n 23._o 2._o a_o oath_n numb_a 30._o 2._o though_o there_o be_v 14._o some_o difference_n between_o a_o vow_n and_o a_o oath_n a_o oath_n be_v proper_o by_o god_n to_o man_n for_o it_o be_v to_o end_v a_o controversy_n among_o man_n but_o a_o vow_n be_v a_o promise_n immediate_o to_o god_n a_o vow_n be_v more_o than_o a_o single_a purpose_n for_o in_o it_o there_o be_v 1._o a_o purpose_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n 2._o a_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o do_v that_o we_o purpose_v and_o to_o the_o lord_n consc._n deut._n 23._o 21._o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n because_o it_o immediate_o and_o direct_o tend_v to_o express_v our_o homage_n unto_o god_n even_o as_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o be_v a_o mean_v effectual_a to_o further_o help_n strengthen_v confirm_v and_o increase_v our_o inward_a conformity_n with_o his_o will_n special_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o thankfulness_n and_o nature_n itself_o dictate_v it_o for_o that_o purpose_n for_o heathen_a man_n will_v use_v this_o as_o a_o mean_n of_o show_v their_o thankfulness_n and_o confidence_n in_o their_o god_n some_o make_v it_o not_o a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o a_o help_n to_o the_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v help_n and_o furtherance_n to_o worship_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o worship_n do_v but_o indirect_o as_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o action_n adjoin_v and_o annex_v to_o they_o but_o a_o vow_n tend_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o be_v direct_o and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o be_v the_o increase_n of_o virtue_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n do_v only_o it_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n as_o fast_v feast_v 2._o it_o be_v a_o firm_a bind_n of_o the_o conscience_n unto_o god_n numb_a 30._o 3_o it_o be_v a_o swear_n by_o god_n unto_o god_n and_o so_o contain_v implicit_o a_o prayer_n unto_o god_n to_o punish_v we_o severe_o and_o sharp_o if_o we_o fail_v to_o perform_v it_o deut._n 23._o 23._o there_o be_v affirmative_a and_o negative_a vow_n abraham_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n unto_o god_n that_o be_v vow_v and_o swear_v unto_o he_o by_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o take_v so_o much_o as_o a_o shooe-latchet_a of_o the_o sodomite_n good_n and_o jacob_n vow_v to_o offer_v the_o ten_o at_o bethel_n and_o there_o solemn_o and_o public_o to_o serve_v god_n but_o evermore_o the_o thing_n must_v be_v in_o itself_o indiferent_a therefore_o the_o lord_n command_v that_o none_o shall_v by_o vow_n dedicate_v the_o first-born_a because_o it_o be_v god_n before_o the_o end_n of_o a_o vow_n must_v be_v furtherance_n in_o godliness_n it_o must_v be_v make_v to_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v the_o object_n of_o it_o judg._n 11._o 30_o 31._o abraham_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o he_o david_n vow_v and_o perform_v to_o he_o deut._n 23._o 21._o psal._n 50._o 14._o where_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o vow_n it_o mention_n he_o reason_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o religious_a worship_n therefore_o god_n only_o must_v be_v the_o immediate_a object_n 2._o there_o be_v no_o example_n in_o scripture_n of_o any_o that_o vow_v to_o saint_n bellarmine_n therefore_o may_v well_o say_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o heretic_n by_o 9_o which_o he_o mean_v protestant_n do_v judge_v we_o idolatrous_a because_o we_o make_v solemn_a vow_n to_o the_o saint_n and_o indeed_o acknowledge_v vow_n to_o be_v religious_a worship_n they_o be_v much_o trouble_v to_o free_v their_o action_n from_o idolatry_n at_o last_o they_o pitch_v on_o this_o that_o since_o saint_n be_v god_n by_o participation_n and_o have_v his_o image_n therefore_o we_o may_v vow_v to_o they_o but_o then_o we_o may_v vow_v to_o magistrate_n for_o they_o be_v god_n so_o and_o then_o we_o may_v also_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o yet_o they_o allow_v not_o a_o vow_n have_v these_o special_a uses_n 1._o to_o be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o need_n chief_o in_o affliction_n and_o temptation_n 2._o to_o restrain_v corruption_n of_o nature_n by_o avoid_v thing_n lawful_a if_o enticement_n to_o sin_n 3._o to_o provoke_v ourselves_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o such_o duty_n as_o we_o find_v ourselves_o natural_o slack_a unto_o rule_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o make_v a_o vow_n 1._o for_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o vow_n that_o we_o vow_v nothing_o but_o thing_n lawful_a in_o themselves_o and_o to_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o condition_n death_n 2._o a_o thing_n of_o some_o weight_n and_o moment_n either_o in_o itself_o or_o at_o least_o to_o the_o party_n vow_v therefore_o the_o lord_n forbid_v the_o price_n of_o a_o dog_n because_o it_o be_v a_o vile_a and_o base_a creature_n it_o have_v also_o a_o mystery_n for_o he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o a_o backslider_n from_o which_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o nothing_o 3._o it_o must_v be_v a_o thing_n possible_a and_o in_o our_o power_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v the_o manner_n of_o vow_v 1._o it_o must_v be_v do_v with_o understanding_n and_o advise_o which_o be_v iephtha_n fail_n 6._o 2._o with_o humiliation_n thât_v we_o have_v so_o often_o deal_v perfidious_o with_o god_n and_o with_o joy_n also_o that_o god_n will_v take_v we_o to_o he_o again_o though_o we_o have_v deny_v he_o neh._n 9_o 10._o 2_o chron._n 29._o 36._o 3._o with_o full_a purpose_n of_o heart_n to_o perform_v psal._n 76._o 11._o the_o very_a end_n of_o vow_n and_o promise_n be_v to_o bind_v our_o unstable_a heart_n and_o to_o knit_v our_o soul_n more_o close_o to_o god_n 4._o ân_n faith_n be_v reconcile_v with_o god_n the_o vow_n of_o poverty_n and_o continency_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v because_o they_o be_v not_o do_v in_o faith_n but_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o it_o for_o hereby_o they_o think_v they_o do_v a_o more_o meritorious_a act_n and_o that_o by_o these_o vow_n as_o they_o please_v god_n the_o more_o so_o god_n be_v more_o oblige_v to_o bestow_v heaven_n upon_o they_o 5._o we_o must_v not_o be_v over_o often_o in_o vow_v it_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a duty_n 6._o we_o must_v not_o make_v perpetual_a vow_n therefore_o in_o the_o vow_n of_o the_o nazariteship_n god_n will_v not_o have_v they_o make_v a_o perpetual_a vow_n but_o rather_o for_o a_o time_n certain_a ceremony_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v accomplish_v by_o those_o that_o be_v ordinary_a at_o the_o end_n of_o their_o vow_n by_o which_o he_o do_v not_o only_o presuppose_v but_o enjoin_v a_o set_a time_n we_o read_v of_o no_o perpetual_a nazarites_n but_o extraordinary_a two_o sampson_z and_o samuel_n popish_a votary_n in_o all_o respect_n abuse_v this_o sacred_a ordinance_n they_o vow_v to_o saint_n vow_v thing_n unlawful_a and_o trivial_a to_o go_v in_o gray_a thing_n not_o in_o the_o compass_n of_o man_n power_n to_o be_v perpetual_o continent_n hope_v to_o merit_v by_o vow_v and_o imagine_v a_o perfection_n ibid._n to_o themselves_o from_o it_o they_o make_v child_n to_o vow_v which_o can_v deliberate_v and_o bind_v they_o to_o keep_v it_o whether_o their_o parent_n will_v or_o no._n it_o be_v a_o question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n a_o dentur_fw-la consilia_fw-la evangelica_n à _fw-la praeceptis_fw-la distincta_fw-la whether_o there_o be_v evangelical_n counsel_n or_o counsel_n of_o perfection_n distinct_a from_o precept_n the_o papist_n say_v that_o in_o god_n word_n there_o be_v command_n which_o belong_v to_o all_o and_o counsel_n which_o do_v teach_v some_o excellent_a heroical_a action_n which_o if_o a_o man_n do_v not_o he_o sin_v not_o but_o yet_o if_o he_o do_v he_o shall_v have_v a_o great_a reward_n in_o heaven_n they_o call_v they_o one_o while_n evangelical_n counsel_n because_o they_o be_v not_o command_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n but_o only_o commend_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n another_o while_n counsel_n of_o perfection_n because_o they_o place_v a_o most_o perfect_a state_n and_o degree_n of_o christian_a life_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o superogatory_n work_v be_v good_a work_v do_v over_o and_o above_o enjoin_v duty_n they_o mention_v three_o principal_a and_o substantial_a counsel_n continence_n or_o
her_o family_n mat._n 22._o 37._o matth._n 3._o 8._o &_o 4._o 17._o 17._o act._n 2._o 5_o 10_o &_o 13._o chap._n and_o in_o their_o epistle_n mark_v 1._o 15._o 15._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o word_n borrow_v from_o the_o make_n of_o a_o impression_n by_o a_o stamp_n or_o seal_v john_n 21._o 15._o act._n 20._o 20._o it_o be_v good_a to_o have_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o rule_v of_o life_n draw_v to_o brief_a head_n it_o be_v use_v to_o draw_v art_n and_o science_n plentiful_o lay_v out_o into_o compendious_a head_n and_o some_o few_o general_a rule_n and_o principle_n luther_n profess_v he_o be_v still_o discipuluâ_n catechismi_fw-la that_o he_o study_v the_o principle_n psal._n 78._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 1._o 5._o the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n be_v represent_v in_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o proverb_n gen._n 17._o 12_o 13_o omnis_fw-la christi_fw-la actio_fw-la christiani_n instructio_fw-la dr._n reynolds_n call_v aquinas_n his_o sum_n that_o absolute_a body_n of_o divinity_n dr._n twiss_n doubt_v conscience_n resolve_n prov._n 22._o 6._o 6._o chanoe_n gen._n 5._o 18._o so_o the_o hebrew_n interpret_v that_o gen._n 14._o 14._o his_o train_a or_o instruct_v servant_n those_o which_o he_o teach_v in_o piety_n the_o word_n come_v from_o chanach_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d vox_fw-la graeca_n est_fw-la quam_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la pro_fw-la sua_fw-la coepit_fw-la usurpare_fw-la martinius_n eusebius_n say_v one_o be_v set_v apart_o on_o purpose_n for_o this_o office_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n call_v the_o catechist_n hinc_fw-la catechumeni_fw-la dicebantur_fw-la qui_fw-la catechismuâ_n discebant_fw-la catechistae_fw-la qui_fw-la catechismum_fw-la docebant_fw-la dietericus_n catechise_v what_o it_o be_v catechesis_fw-la est_fw-la elementaris_fw-la institutio_fw-la christianae_n religionis_fw-la viva_fw-la docentiâ_n voce_fw-la tradita_fw-la &_o â_o discentibus_fw-la repotita_fw-la altingius_fw-la altingius_fw-la m._n pemble_n m._n greenham_n at_o sermon_n and_o prayer_n man_n may_v sleep_v or_o wander_v but_o when_o one_o be_v ask_v a_o question_n he_o must_v discover_v what_o he_o be_v herbert_n remain_v chap._n 21._o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v either_o by_o the_o minister_n in_o public_a or_o the_o governor_n in_o private_a or_o some_o able_a body_n in_o their_o place_n verba_fw-la scriptura_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la verba_fw-la legenda_fw-la sed_fw-la vivenda_fw-la say_v luther_n suââââum_fw-la christianae_n fidei_fw-la brevi_fw-la libellâ_fw-la complexââ_n est_fw-la genevae_n joan._n calvinus_n quam_fw-la itali_fw-la gallt_v belga_n scoti_n etc._n etc._n publicae_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la suis_fw-la interpretantur_fw-la eandem_fw-la sententia_fw-la ubique_fw-la servata_fw-la fusiââ_n apud_fw-la anglos_n &_o âuculentius_fw-la expressit_fw-la vir_fw-la non_fw-la vulgari_fw-la doctrina_fw-la &_o facundia_fw-la proditor_n alexander_n noellus_fw-la ad._n hamilton_n apostate_n sueton._n orthodox_n respon_n consectary_n of_o reproof_n 2._o of_o exhortation_n see_v gen._n 6._o 15._o &_o 8._o 21._o young_a people_n have_v great_a temptation_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 22._o their_o soul_n be_v precious_a precious_a aristot._n de_fw-fr hist._n animal_n l._n 6._o c._n 6._o 6._o caussins_n holy_a court_n eight_o reason_n of_o his_o first_o book_n book_n de_fw-fr orig_n &_o progress_n idol_n l._n 3._o c._n 54._o 54._o lib._n 3._o c._n 6._o of_o his_o inquiry_n prov._n 22._o 6._o &_o 31._o 1._o 1._o non_fw-la minus_fw-la placet_fw-la deo_fw-la hosanna_n puerorum_fw-la quam_fw-la hallelujab_fw-la virorum_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v compose_v some_o psalm_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o hebrew_n alphabet_n as_o 25_o 34_o 37_o 119._o that_o parent_n may_v teach_v their_o child_n the_o first_o element_n of_o religion_n as_o well_o as_o learning_n see_v mr_n gataker_n on_o psal._n 34._o 11._o &_o menoch_n de_fw-fr rep._n heb._n l._n 3._o â_o 3._o in_o octonariis_fw-la prolixioris_fw-la omnium_fw-la psalmi_n ad_fw-la singulorum_fw-la versuum_fw-la initia_fw-la recurrentes_fw-la eaedem_fw-la literae_fw-la ostonariis_fw-la ipsis_fw-la per_fw-la ordinem_fw-la alphabeti_fw-la dispositis_fw-la sunt_fw-la locali_fw-la memoriae_fw-la ad_fw-la sententias_fw-la retinendas_fw-la alphabetariis_fw-la igitur_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la christi_fw-la sic_fw-la minutatim_fw-la particular_a rerum_fw-la dispensari_fw-la conâenientissimum_fw-la est_fw-la guil._n rivet_n vindic_fw-la evangel_n parte_fw-la secunda_fw-la cap_n 8._o we_o have_v discharge_v our_o duty_n our_o prayer_n and_o instruction_n may_v be_v as_o seed_v sow_v and_o our_o reward_n shall_v not_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n but_o in_o the_o do_n of_o our_o duty_n psal._n 19_o 11._o 11._o euseb._n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 10._o cap._n 32._o see_v m._n pemble_v sermon_n of_o ignorance_n luk._n 1._o 5._o jer._n 10._o 25._o there_o be_v general_o a_o great_a ignorance_n of_o christ_n 1._o few_o man_n seek_v after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n john_n 4._o 10._o 2._o few_o believe_v in_o he_o because_o they_o know_v he_o not_o john_n 12._o 38._o 3._o man_n be_v estrange_v from_o he_o in_o their_o conversation_n ephes._n 4._o 18._o 4._o they_o go_v on_o in_o their_o former_a lust_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 14._o nescientia_fw-la dicit_fw-la simplicem_fw-la scientiae_fw-la negationem_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o angelis_n esse_fw-la potest_fw-la ignoraatia_fw-la importat_fw-la scientiae_fw-la privationem_fw-la dum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la alicui_fw-la deest_fw-la scientia_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la aptus_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la scire_fw-la aquin._n 1a_o 2ae_fw-la quaest._n 76._o artic._n 2._o vide_fw-la plura_fw-la ibid._n ibid._n heb._n 5._o 13._o one_o be_v examine_v affirm_v blind_o that_o none_o have_v die_v or_o shall_v die_v for_o he_o another_o that_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o the_o firmament_n be_v he_o son_n of_o god_n that_o die_v for_o he_o he_o the_o papist_n make_v the_o pope_n their_o personal_a foundation_n see_v dr_n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o and_o m._n rous_n his_o catholic_n charity_n chap._n 10_o 11._o some_o dislike_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n whosoever_o will_v be_v save_v etc._n etc._n upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n thou_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v the_o article_n of_o thy_o faith_n to_o know_v god_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v the_o ten_o commandment_n to_o know_v what_o work_v thou_o shall_v do_v and_o what_o to_o leave_v undo_v christ_n prayer_n which_o be_v a_o abridgement_n epitome_n or_o compendious_a collection_n of_o all_o the_o psalm_n and_o prayer_n write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o thou_o pray_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o well_o for_o thyself_o as_o for_o all_o other_o desire_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o preserve_v thou_o in_o virtue_n and_o all_o other_o give_v thanks_o for_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o thou_o and_o all_o other_o he_o that_o know_v less_o than_o this_o can_v be_v save_v and_o he_o that_o know_v no_o more_o than_o this_o if_o he_o follow_v his_o knowledge_n can_v be_v damn_v b._n hooper_n on_o the_o command_n fundamentalem_fw-la articulum_fw-la habendum_fw-la sentio_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la voluntate_fw-la dei_fw-la revelantis_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la &_o aeternam_fw-la beatitudinem_fw-la consequendam_fw-la est_fw-la adeò_fw-la scitu_fw-la &_o creditu_fw-la necessarius_fw-la ut_fw-la ex_fw-la illius_fw-la ignoration_n ac_fw-la multo_fw-la magis_fw-la oppugnatione_fw-la aeternae_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la amittendae_fw-la manifestum_fw-la periculum_fw-la incurratur_fw-la davenant_n de_fw-fr pace_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la about_o fundamental_a point_n there_o may_v sometime_o arise_v such_o dispute_n as_o be_v no_o way_n fundamental_a for_o instance_n that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o essence_n and_o three_o in_o person_n distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o that_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o both_o father_n and_o son_n that_o these_o three_o person_n be_v coeternal_a and_o coequal_a all_o these_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n of_o fundamental_o but_o those_o school-nicety_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o son_n generation_n and_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o likewise_o fundamental_a and_o of_o equal_a necessity_n with_o the_o former_a b._n daven_n opin_v of_o the_o fundam_fw-la point_n of_o relig._n certa_fw-la semper_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o paucis_fw-la say_v tertullian_n certain_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n be_v not_o many_o and_o they_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v deliver_v in_o a_o few_o word_n in_o absoluto_fw-la ac_fw-la facili_fw-la stat_fw-la aeternit_fw-la as_o hilary_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v a_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n vide_fw-la voet._n thes._n p._n 471_o etc._n etc._n articuli_fw-la cognitââ_n &_o creditu_fw-la necessarii_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la such_o article_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v and_o believe_v to_o salvation_n be_v not_o such_o truth_n as_o be_v mere_o speculative_a but_o such_o only_a as_o have_v a_o necessary_a influence_n upon_o practice_n and_o not_o all_o those_o neither_o but_o such_o as_o have_v necessary_a
influence_n upon_o the_o act_n and_o function_n of_o christian_a life_n principia_fw-la theologia_n or_o fundamentalia_fw-la dogmata_fw-la &_o fundamenta_fw-la salutis_fw-la be_v not_o the_o same_o but_o differ_v formal_o though_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v material_o coincident_a mr_n mede_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o mr_n hartlib_n as_o there_o be_v in_o point_n of_o say_v fundamental_a article_n so_o there_o be_v in_o point_n of_o practice_n fundamental_a duty_n master_n raynolds_n on_o hosoa_n 14._o 2_o 3._o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n must_v 1._o be_v hold_v with_o great_a certainty_n 1._o speculative_a foundation_n john_n 17._o 3._o we_o must_v hold_v one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n christ_n the_o mediator_n 2._o practical_a john_n 16._o 8._o we_o must_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o sin_n of_o nature_n the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o suspect_v those_o opinion_n which_o advance_v nature_n depress_v christ_n decry_v good_a work_n 2._o we_o must_v be_v earnest_a about_o the_o particular_a explication_n of_o these_o truth_n 1_o cor._n 5._o 6._o error_n in_o matter_n of_o justification_n be_v dangerous_a corollary_n corollary_n haeresis_fw-la est_fw-la pertinax_fw-la defensio_fw-la erroris_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la opinionem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la pugnantem_fw-la cum_fw-la fundamento_fw-la ejus_fw-la ponentis_fw-la voet._n haereticus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la inverbum_fw-la fidei_fw-la peccat_fw-la luther_n in_o epist._n galat._n c._n 1._o v._n 8._o haereticum_fw-la tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christiana_n inde_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la usque_fw-la diem_fw-la vocavit_fw-la cum_fw-la qui_fw-la haeresiarcham_n aliquem_fw-la sequâtus_fw-la negat_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la aliquam_fw-la fundamentalem_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la necessariam_fw-la inter_fw-la christianos_n controversiam_fw-la vedel_n de_fw-mi arcan_a armin._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o vide_fw-la plura_fw-la ibid._n there_o be_v damnable_a heresy_n 2_o pet._n 2._o 1._o and_o error_n that_o be_v capital_a not_o hold_v the_o head_n col._n 2._o 19_o and_o such_o as_o destroy_v the_o faith_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 18._o 18._o vide_fw-la altingii_n loc_n come_v part_n 2._o p._n 262._o et_fw-la zânc_fw-la misc_fw-la de_fw-fr magist._n non_fw-la omnis_fw-la error_n est_fw-la baeresis_fw-la sed_fw-la illa_fw-la tantum_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la aât_fw-la in_o fundamento_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o pertinaciter_fw-la defenditur_fw-la voet._n some_o error_n do_v not_o touch_v the_o foundation_n other_o do_v concutere_fw-la and_o other_o do_v evertere_fw-la we_o hold_v the_o lutheran_n to_o be_v true_a church_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o likewise_o in_o be_v free_a from_o idolatry_n for_o albeit_o they_o have_v image_n in_o their_o church_n which_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a thing_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o worship_v they_o and_o although_o they_o hold_v real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o adore_v it_o dr_n twiss_n his_o doubt_a conscience_n resolve_v my_o lord_n faulkland_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o he_o that_o answer_v he_o about_o the_o roman_a infallibilitd_a pag._n 220._o to_o 231._o seem_v to_o hold_v the_o negative_a bellar._n tom._n 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 21._o t._n aquin._n part_n 2._o quaest._n undecima_fw-la articulo_fw-la tertio_fw-la vide_fw-la gerhardi_fw-la loc_n commun_n de_fw-fr magistratu_fw-la magistratu_fw-la part._n 3._o philos._n sob_v sect._n 2._o q._n 6._o zanch._n tom_n 2._o misc._n in_o cap._n de_fw-fr magistratu_fw-la aretius_n have_v write_v the_o history_n of_o valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la put_v to_o death_n at_o bern._n there_o be_v a_o statute_n against_o lollardi_n in_o england_n and_o hugonot_n in_o france_n haereticus_fw-la ego_fw-la tibi_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la miht_n see_v statut._n of_o qu._n eliz._n c._n 1._o propriè_fw-la heretici_fw-la vocantur_fw-la qui_fw-la ea_fw-la pertinaciter_fw-la rejictunt_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la scripture_n docentur_fw-la daven_n de_fw-fr judice_fw-la controv_fw-mi haeresis_fw-la est_fw-la error_n pugnans_fw-la cum_fw-la âundamento_fw-la religionis_fw-la christianae_n isque_fw-la pertinax_fw-la altingius_fw-la tom._n 2._o problem_n theol._n part_n 2._o prob._n 14._o heresy_n be_v a_o error_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n teach_v and_o defend_v with_o obstinacy_n perk._n on_o gal._n 5._o 20._o see_v more_o there_o there_o lib._n 3_o of_o the_o church_n ch_n 3._o see_v d._n prideaux_n his_o sermon_n on_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 19_o vide_fw-la grotium_fw-la in_o tit._n 3._o 11._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d dicuntur_fw-la ab_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d eligere_fw-la praeferre_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la haeresis_fw-la priuââa_fw-la aliqua_fw-la opinio_fw-la quam_fw-la quis_fw-la prae_fw-la dogmate_fw-it christiano_n &_o fide_fw-la catholica_fw-la sibi_fw-la amplectendam_fw-la eligit_fw-la eamque_fw-la pertinaciter_fw-la defendit_fw-la gerh._n loc_n commun_n de_fw-fr ministerio_fw-la ecclesiastico_fw-la c._n 8_o ut_fw-la quis_fw-la sit_fw-la propriò_fw-la dictus_fw-la haereticus_fw-la requiritur_fw-la 1._o ut_fw-mi sit_v personâ_n in_o ecclesiam_fw-la visibilem_fw-la per_fw-la baptismi_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la recepta_fw-la 1_o cor._n 11._o 9_o act._n 20._o 13._o 2._o ut_fw-la erret_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la sive_fw-la errorem_fw-la illum_fw-la noviter_fw-la introducat_fw-la sive_fw-la ab_fw-la alio_fw-la acceptum_fw-la amplectatur_fw-la quamvis_fw-la illud_fw-la haeresiarchae_fw-la hoc_fw-la vero_fw-la haeretici_fw-la proprium_fw-la videri_fw-la possit_fw-la 3._o ut_fw-mi error_n directè_fw-la in_o ipsi_fw-la fidei_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la impingat_fw-la 4._o ut_fw-la errori_fw-la conjuncta_fw-la sit_fw-la malitia_fw-la ac_fw-la pertinacia_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la etiam_fw-la aliquoties_fw-la admonitus_fw-la nihilominus_fw-la obstinatè_fw-la errorem_fw-la suum_fw-la defendat_fw-la 5._o ut_fw-la dissensiones_fw-la &_o scandala_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la excitet_fw-la ejusque_fw-la unitatem_fw-la scindat_fw-la id._n ibid._n haeresis_fw-la consideratur_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o persona_fw-la haeresis_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la est_fw-la quando_fw-la id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la quod_fw-la proponitur_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la sidem_fw-la catholicam_fw-la &_o orthodoxam_fw-la haeresis_fw-la autem_fw-la personae_fw-la quum_fw-la quis_fw-la haeresin_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la ita_fw-la proponit_fw-la ut_fw-la asserat_fw-la etiam_fw-la convictus_fw-la cham._n de_fw-fr occ._n pontif._n l._n 6._o error_n be_v practical_a or_o doctrinal_a only_a fundamental_a or_o circa-fundamental_a or_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o two_o see_v master_n clark_n sermon_n on_o matth._n 8._o 13._o and_o master_n cranfords_n haereseomachia_n on_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 17._o 17._o arius_n in_o alexandria_n una_fw-la scintilla_fw-la fuit_fw-la sed_fw-la quoniam_fw-la non_fw-la statim_fw-la oppressus_fw-la est_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la ejus_fw-la flamma_fw-la populata_fw-la est_fw-la aquin._n aquin._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la cum_fw-la agitaretur_fw-la de_fw-la ista_fw-la quaestione_fw-la an_o morte_fw-la mulctandi_fw-la &_o cogendi_fw-la haeretici_fw-la in_fw-la synodo_fw-la quadam_fw-la londini_fw-la &_o perrogarentur_fw-la singulorum_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la surrexit_fw-la quidam_fw-la senex_fw-la theologus_fw-la atque_fw-la hoc_fw-la planum_fw-la esse_fw-la asserit_fw-la ex_fw-la ipso_fw-la apostolo_n haereticum_fw-la hominem_fw-la post_fw-la unam_fw-la aut_fw-la alteram_fw-la admonitionem_fw-la dâ_n vita_fw-la de_fw-fr vita_fw-la inquit_fw-la ergo_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la haereticos_fw-la istos_fw-la homines_fw-la post_fw-la unam_fw-la aut_fw-la alteram_fw-la admonitionem_fw-la â_o vita_fw-la tollendos_fw-la erasm._n annotat._v in_o tit._n 3._o well_fw-mi sola_fw-la modestia_fw-la potuisset_fw-la vitam_fw-la redimere_fw-la say_v galvin_n of_o servetuâân_n opusc_n here_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n set_v forth_o 1._o the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n to_o bear_v the_o sword_n 2._o the_o end_n which_o be_v double_a 1._o the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o good_a in_o general_n 2._o to_o execute_v wrath_n on_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a god_n never_o commit_v to_o any_o that_o charge_v of_o the_o body_n only_o and_o not_o proportionable_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o to_o master_n parent_n heir_n judge_v 7._o 10._o 10._o magistrate_n in_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o hebrew_n be_v call_v master_n of_o restraint_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la vetat_fw-la peccare_fw-la cum_fw-la potest_fw-la jubet_fw-la sene._n sene._n m._n hildersham_n on_o psal._n 51._o 7._o lect._n 146._o as_o all_o blasphemous_a heretic_n levit._n 24._o 16._o so_o seduce_v heretic_n be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n the_o whole_a 13_o chapter_n of_o deut._n be_v spend_v about_o the_o seduce_a of_o false_a prophet_n be_v not_o moses_n moral_a law_n of_o perpetual_a equity_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o age_n be_v blasphemy_n more_o tolerable_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n mr._n cotton_n on_o rev._n 16._o three_o vial._n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v say_v beza_n to_o the_o judicial_a law_n as_o they_o be_v give_v by_o moses_n to_o one_o people_n yet_o so_o far_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v they_o as_o they_o comprehend_v that_o general_a equity_n which_o ought_v to_o prevail_v every_o where_o by_o the_o judicial_a law_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o false_a prophet_n and_o idolater_n be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n deut._n 13._o 8_o 9_o &_o 17._o 5_o 6._o where_o there_o be_v a_o moral_a equity_n in_o the_o precept_n it_o be_v perpetual_a 1._o that_o
3._o 22._o isa._n 61._o 1_o 2._o heb._n 1._o 1._o &_o 2._o 3_o act._n 1._o 3_o mat._n 11._o 25_o 27._o mat._n 22._o 32._o joh._n 5._o 46._o luk._n â4_n 44_o 45_o montanus_n hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a instruction_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o the_o church_n but_o that_o there_o be_v only_o certain_a principle_n of_o religion_n give_v by_o they_o be_v unperfect_a and_o be_v afterward_o to_o be_v finish_v and_o polish_a by_o the_o comforter_n which_o himself_o do_v forge_v tertullian_n be_v a_o montanist_n he_o often_o liken_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o a_o tree_n who_o fruit_n be_v not_o bloom_v and_o unto_o one_o which_o be_v in_o his_o base_a age_n cartw._n reply_v to_o whitgift_n 2_o answer_v 79._o 79._o additio_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturam_fw-la fit_a tripliciter_fw-la 1._o in_o quo_fw-la additum_fw-la est_fw-la contrarium_fw-la &_o est_fw-la â_z 2o._o in_o quo_fw-la additum_fw-la est_fw-la diversum_fw-la &_o est_fw-la praesumptionis_fw-la 3o._o in_o quo_fw-la additum_fw-la est_fw-la consonum_fw-la &_o est_fw-la fidelis_fw-la instructionis_fw-la instructionis_fw-la that_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n to_o which_o god_n will_v have_v nothing_o add_v and_o from_o which_o he_o will_v have_v nothing_o take_v away_o must_v needs_o be_v perfect_a illud_fw-la perfectum_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la cui_fw-la nihil_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la genere_fw-la aut_fw-la addi_fw-la aut_fw-la diminui_fw-la potest_fw-la psal._n 19_o 8._o the_o hebrew_n word_n signify_v that_o perfection_n cui_fw-la nihil_fw-la deest_fw-la deest_fw-la salus_fw-la nostra_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la salutis_fw-la via_fw-la fides_fw-la viae_fw-la dux_fw-la scripturae_fw-la raynoldus_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o be_v take_v collectiuè_n not_o distributiuè_a si_fw-mi ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d non_fw-la totam_fw-la sed_fw-la omnem_fw-la significaret_fw-la eo_fw-la fortius_fw-la futurum_fw-la argumentum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la part_n singulae_fw-la sufficerent_fw-la tum_fw-la multo_fw-la magis_fw-la omnes_fw-la chamierus_n 2_o king_n 5._o 8._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 15_o 16_o 17._o 17._o nullus_fw-la papista_fw-la aptè_fw-la &_o plenè_fw-la huic_fw-la argumento_fw-la unquam_fw-la respondit_fw-la aut_fw-la respondebit_fw-la whitak_n whitak_n be_v not_o the_o scripture_n say_v hawk_n the_o martyr_n sufficient_a for_o my_o salvation_n yes_o say_v one_o of_o bonner_n chaplain_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o salvation_n but_o not_o for_o our_o instruction_n hawk_n answer_v god_n send_v i_o the_o salvation_n and_o take_v you_o the_o instruction_n fox_n martyrol_n episc._n daven_n de_fw-fr judicé_fw-la controver_n cap._n 5._o 5._o notandum_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la scripture_n seu_fw-la scripto_fw-la verbo_fw-la definiri_fw-la quod_fw-la enim_fw-la prius_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la seu_fw-la sermânem_fw-la nunc_fw-la scripturas_fw-la appellat_fw-la adversus_fw-la pontificios_fw-la qui_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la ad_fw-la non_fw-la scriptas_fw-la traditiones_fw-la &_o pontificum_fw-la etiam_fw-la decreta_fw-la transferunt_fw-la sed_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la scripture_n cingi_fw-la &_o terminari_fw-la apparet_fw-la rom._n 1._o 2._o deinde_fw-la 2_o tim._n 3._o 17._o denique_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la cum_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la conferat_fw-la eamque_fw-la in_o se_fw-la inclusam_fw-la habeat_fw-la scriptura_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la cam_fw-la accedere_fw-la aut_fw-la adjungi_fw-la potest_fw-la hanc_fw-la enim_fw-la judaeorum_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la scripture_n comprehensa_fw-la opinionem_fw-la christus_fw-la ipse_fw-la comprobat_fw-la cartw._n in_o harm_n evangel_n in_o joh._n 5._o 39_o 39_o minima_fw-la veritatis_fw-la particula_fw-la in_o scripture_n continetur_fw-la charronaeus_fw-la charronaeus_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 3._o rhemist_n annotat_fw-la in_o joh._n 21._o sect_n 3._o &_o aunot_n in_o 2_o thess._n 2._o 16._o &_o annot_n in_o act._n 15._o sect_n 3._o &_o in_o apoc._n 10._o sect_n 1._o 1._o asserimus_fw-la in_o scripture_n non_fw-la contineri_fw-la expressè_fw-la totam_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la necessarianâ_n five_o the_o side_n five_o de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la praeter_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la scriptum_fw-la requiri_fw-la etiam_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la s_o ãâ¦ã_z id_fw-la est_fw-la divinas_fw-la &_o apostolicas_fw-la traditiones_fw-la bellarm._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la omnes_fw-la libros_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la neâ_n non_fw-la traditiones_fw-la ipsas_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la mores_fw-la pertinentes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vel_fw-la ore_fw-la tenus_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la vel_fw-la à _fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it dictatas_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la successione_n in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la conservatas_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la ac_fw-la reverentia_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratur_fw-la tridentina_n synodus_fw-la sess_v 4._o sect_n 1._o 1._o bellarminâ_n haâh_v a_o whole_a book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a do_v we_o not_o allow_v of_o all_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o agree_v unto_o the_o scripture_n nay_o more_o do_v we_o not_o translate_v the_o word_n tradition_n in_o the_o scripture_n when_o the_o text_n will_v bear_v it_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a original_a look_v upon_o mat._n 15._o and_o in_o three_o several_a verse_n 2_o 3_o 6._o we_o use_v the_o word_n tradition_n look_v upon_o the_o 7_o of_o mark_n and_o in_o four_o several_a verse_n vers_fw-la 3_o 8_o 9_o 13._o we_o translate_v tradition_n look_v upon_o st_n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n 2._o 8._o gal._n 1_o 14._o and_o upon_o st_n peter_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 18._o and_o in_o all_o these_o in_o the_o translation_n join_v with_o your_o rhemish_n testament_n you_o shall_v find_v the_o word_n tradition_n dr_n featley_n case_n for_o the_o spectacle_n ch_n 8._o 8._o the_o word_n original_o may_v import_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v howsoever_o either_o by_o word_n or_o writing_n thus_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v first_o tradition_n as_o deliver_v by_o word_n and_o still_o be_v tradition_n because_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o writing_n but_o though_o the_o word_n in_o itself_o have_v this_o general_a and_o indifferent_a signification_n of_o anything_o that_o be_v deliver_v yet_o in_o our_o disputation_n it_o be_v restrain_v to_o one_o only_a manner_n of_o deliver_v by_o word_n and_o relation_n only_o and_o not_o by_o scripture_n we_o deny_v that_o either_o in_o the_o law_n or_o gospel_n there_o be_v any_o thing_n leave_v unwritten_a which_o concern_v we_o to_o know_v for_o attain_v of_o true_a faith_n and_o righteousness_n towards_o god_n abbot_n against_o bishop_n bishop_n in_o mat._n 15._o 15._o vide_fw-la whitakerum_fw-la de_fw-fr scrip._n c._n 9_o quaest._n 6._o p._n 405._o &_o 406._o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la stand_v for_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o will_v have_v baptism_n of_o infant_n to_o be_v one_o but_o when_o he_o dispute_v for_o baptism_n of_o infant_n against_o anabaptist_n than_o he_o heap_v up_o text_n of_o scripture_n mr_n blakes_n birth-priviledge_n birth-priviledge_n exstat_fw-la nomen_fw-la diei_fw-la dominicae_fw-la mat._n 28_o mar._n 16_o apoc._n 1._o exstat_fw-la exemplum_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quae_fw-la eum_fw-la diem_fw-la solennem_fw-la habuit_fw-la celebratione_fw-la coenae_fw-la praedicatione_n verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la collectione_n elâemosynae_n act._n 20._o 1_o cor._n 16._o 1._o quod_fw-la exemplum_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la praxin_fw-la cum_fw-la apostoli_fw-la nobis_fw-la repraesentant_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la scriptis_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la videt_fw-la eos_fw-la praecipere_fw-la imitationem_fw-la svi_fw-la vedel_n ãâã_d epist._n ignatii_n ad_fw-la magnesios_n c._n 7._o vide_fw-la plura_fw-la ibid._n ibid._n symbolum_n apostolicum_fw-la ex_fw-la traditione_n est_fw-la secundum_fw-la formulam_fw-la rationemque_fw-la verborum_fw-la at_o secundum_fw-la substantiam_fw-la est_fw-la scriptura_fw-la ipsissima_fw-la junius_n animad_fw-la in_o bellarm._n controv_fw-mi 1._o l._n 4._o negamus_fw-la ullum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la symbolo_fw-la vel_fw-la minimum_fw-la articulum_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la disertè_fw-la constet_fw-la ac_fw-la totidem_fw-la penè_fw-la dixerim_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o scripture_n sancta_fw-la adeò_fw-la ut_fw-la merito_fw-la dici_fw-la possit_fw-la opus_fw-la tesellatum_fw-la uâpote_fw-la constans_fw-la ex_fw-la variis_fw-la loc_n be_v hinc_fw-la inde_fw-la excorptis_fw-la atque_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la collatis_fw-la artificioséque_fw-la compositis_fw-la chamier_n 2_o thess._n 2._o 15._o hoc_fw-la suis_fw-la primum_fw-la pharisaeorum_fw-la dog_n ma_fw-fr quòd_fw-la negarunt_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la spectant_fw-la ad_fw-la religionem_fw-la scripta_fw-la esse_fw-la joseph_n antiq._n l._n 13._o 13._o traditiones_fw-la istae_fw-la non_fw-la scriptae_fw-la pharisaeorum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la in_o n._n test._n dicuntur_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la &_o absolutè_fw-la traditiones_fw-la sed_fw-la notantur_fw-la semper_fw-la aliquo_fw-la clogio_fw-la ut_fw-la quum_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la traditiones_fw-la seniorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la humanae_fw-la siquando_fw-la traditionis_fw-la vox_fw-la ponâtur_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la sumââur_fw-la in_o bonam_fw-la partem_fw-la &_o ipsum_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la traditio_fw-la est_fw-la camer_n in_o mat._n 15._o ephes._n 2._o 20._o apoc._n 21._o 24._o christ_n tax_v the_o ignorance_n
to_o god_n 1._o the_o remainder_n of_o sin_n 2._o the_o defect_n of_o grace_n 3._o the_o devil_n temptation_n 4._o outward_a affliction_n matth._n 14._o to_o be_v weary_a of_o prayer_n be_v to_o sin_n contra_fw-la medicinam_fw-la unicam_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la maximam_fw-la mr_n hildersham_n on_o psal._n 51._o 5._o dr_n gouge_n whole_a armour_n treat_n 3_o part._n 2._o petitio_fw-la duplex_fw-la est_fw-la secundum_fw-la rationem_fw-la objecti_fw-la vel_fw-la rei_fw-la quae_fw-la petitur_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la vel_fw-la apprecatio_fw-la vel_fw-la deprecatio_fw-la apprecatio_fw-la est_fw-la petitio_fw-la de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la bonis_fw-la communicandis_fw-la deprecatio_fw-la est_fw-la petitio_fw-la de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la malis_fw-la amovendis_fw-la ames_n medul_a th._n lib._n 2._o c._n 9_o temporalia_fw-la licet_fw-la desiderare_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la principaliter_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o eye_n sinem_fw-la constituamus_fw-la sed_fw-la sicut_fw-la quaedam_fw-la adminicula_fw-la quibus_fw-la adjuvamur_fw-la ad_fw-la tendendum_fw-la in_o beatitudinem_fw-la in_fw-la quantum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la per_fw-la ea_fw-la vita_fw-la corporalis_fw-la sustentatur_fw-la &_o in_o quantum_fw-la nobis_fw-la organicè_fw-la deserviunt_fw-la ad_fw-la actus_fw-la virtutum_fw-la aquin._n 2a_o 2ae_fw-la q._n 83._o art_n 6._o see_v 1_o king_n 8._o 33._o and_o so_o in_o other_o verse_n there_o of_o saââmons_n prayer_n 2_o chron._n 7._o 1â_n gen._n 2._o 17._o domine_fw-la hiâ_n urc_n hic_fw-la sâca_fw-la &_o ââ_o aeâernum_fw-la parce_fw-fr aug._n ãâ¦ã_z 2_o thess._n 2._o 3._o rom._n 12._o 14._o vide_fw-la rainold_n de_fw-fr lib._n apoc._n praelect_a 163._o orate_fw-la pro_fw-la anima_fw-la d._n tayl._n epist._n dedicat._n to_o the_o rule_n and_o exercise_n of_o holy_a die_n the_o faithful_a sometime_o in_o their_o mourning_n proceed_v to_o expostulation_n which_o be_v vehement_a interrogation_n express_v from_o they_o by_o their_o grief_n whereby_o they_o do_v expostulate_v with_o the_o lord_n concern_v the_o greatness_n or_o continuance_n of_o their_o affliction_n as_o moses_n exod._n 5._o 22._o josh._n 7._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o church_n afflict_v lam._n 5._o 20._o and_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 27._o 46._o but_o we_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a fruit_n of_o a_o lively_a faith_n lest_o it_o proceed_v from_o want_n of_o patience_n and_o degenerate_a to_o murmur_a against_o god_n b._n down_o christian_n exercise_n of_o fast_v see_v psal._n 132._o 2_o 3_o 4._o mat._n 5._o 44._o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o votum_fw-la as_o vaticinium_fw-la d._n hackwell_n on_o judg._n 5._o 31._o see_v d._n gouge_n whole_a armour_n part_n 2._o p._n 192_o 193._o vide_fw-la balduinum_fw-la de_fw-fr case_z ânsc_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o 8._o we_o may_v wish_v they_o temporal_a evil_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v fill_v they_o with_o shame_n put_v they_o in_o fear_n psal._n 59_o 11_o 12._o as_o in_o confess_v of_o sin_n we_o shall_v chief_o âeep_v over_o the_o attribute_n which_o in_o commit_v sin_n we_o have_v chief_o wrong_v so_o in_o confession_n of_o mercy_n we_o shall_v magnify_v that_o attribute_n chief_o which_o god_n in_o give_v that_o mercy_n have_v honour_v see_v d._n gouge_n whole_a armour_n part_n 2._o treat_n 3._o god_n be_v to_o be_v praise_v isa._n 43._o 21._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 9_o he_o be_v fearful_a in_o praise_n thou_o that_o inherit_v the_o praise_n of_o israel_n psal._n 22._o 3._o in_o another_o psalm_n praise_n wait_v for_o thou_o and_o in_o another_o he_o be_v great_o to_o be_v praise_v above_o all_o god_n see_v psal._n 33._o 11._o &_o 10._o 7_o 8._o nehem._n 9_o 5._o david_n earnest_o call_v upon_o all_o creature_n to_o praise_n god_n in_o psal._n 148._o heaven_n earth_n sea_n angel_n man_n beast_n bird_n fish_n tree_n all_o thing_n because_o in_o and_o from_o all_o we_o be_v to_o fetch_v matter_n of_o praise_v he_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a exercise_n of_o the_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n love_n be_v the_o grace_n of_o heaven_n and_o praise_v the_o duty_n of_o heaven_n heaven_n thanksgiving_n do_v continue_v increase_n and_o sweeten_v and_o sanctify_v benefit_n as_o the_o husbandman_n will_v continue_v to_o manure_v that_o ground_n which_o fail_v not_o to_o yield_v he_o a_o harvest_n so_o the_o lord_n will_v continue_v to_o bestow_v blessing_n on_o they_o that_o be_v thankful_a to_o he_o for_o they_o yea_o he_o will_v addâ_n new_a mercy_n to_o the_o old_a and_o give_v more_o and_o more_o great_a and_o great_a still_o increase_v his_o bounty_n as_o they_o increase_v their_o thanksgiving_n for_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o sweeten_v the_o mercy_n cause_v they_o to_o be_v more_o delightful_a and_o comfortable_a in_o that_o it_o cause_v the_o sâul_a to_o taste_v god_n goodness_n in_o they_o by_o which_o a_o man_n receive_v more_o comfort_n from_o these_o terrene_a thing_n than_o a_o beast_n last_o these_o benefit_n be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o thereby_o make_v holy_a in_o the_o use_n so_o that_o we_o have_v god_n allowance_n to_o use_v they_o and_o shall_v be_v better_v by_o they_o it_o be_v a_o comfortable_a and_o pleasant_a duty_n we_o again_o enjoy_v the_o sweetness_n of_o those_o benefit_n which_o we_o give_v thanks_o for_o to_o be_v tell_v and_o think_v of_o the_o good_a i_o have_v receive_v and_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o he_o from_o who_o i_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o most_o needful_a because_o it_o be_v so_o often_o earnest_o require_v and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a danger_n which_o follow_v if_o we_o do_v it_o not_o not_o the_o papist_n join_v god_n and_o the_o saint_n together_o they_o say_v praise_v to_o god_n and_o the_o virgin_n mary_n omnibus_fw-la propemodum_fw-la libris_fw-la gregorii_n de_fw-fr valentia_n subjecta_fw-la est_fw-la haec_fw-la clausula_fw-la quasi_fw-la succentivum_fw-la carmen_fw-la laus_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o beatissimae_fw-la virgini_fw-la &_o jesu_n christo._n et_fw-la sic_fw-la saepe_fw-la baronius_n claudit_fw-la tomos_n annalium_fw-la censent_fw-la enim_fw-la matrem_fw-la filio_fw-la debere_fw-la praeponi_fw-la an_fw-mi poterit_fw-la in_o tota_fw-la italia_n dari_fw-la templum_fw-la christo_fw-la consecratum_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la tam_fw-la multis_fw-la donariis_fw-la opulentum_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la tanta_fw-la devotione_fw-la frequentetur_fw-la quam_fw-la templum_fw-la mariâ_n lauretanae_fw-la nec_fw-la puduit_fw-la baronium_n sic_fw-la claudere_fw-la secundum_fw-la volumen_fw-la annalium_fw-la ut_fw-la mariae_fw-la solius_fw-la intercessioni_fw-la acceptum_fw-la referat_fw-la successum_fw-la laboris_fw-la svi_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la bona_fw-la quae_fw-la à _fw-la deo_fw-la accepit_fw-la nulla_fw-la facta_fw-la christi_fw-la mentione_n molinaei_n hyperaspistes_n l_o 1._o c._n 5._o 1_o sam._n 1._o 13._o vide_fw-la aquin._n 2a_fw-la 2ae_fw-la q._n 83._o art_n 1â_n vide_fw-la robins_n apol._n brownist_n cap._n 3._o et_fw-la ames_n de_fw-fr consc_fw-fr l._n 4._o c._n 17._o quaest._n 5._o &_o perkin_n sum_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr case_z consc_fw-la c._n 7._o q._n 3._o there_o be_v set_v form_n of_o confession_n of_o prayer_n and_o praise_v god_n see_v 92._o &_o 102._o &_o 136._o psalm_n 2_o chron._n 20._o 21._o &_o 29._o 30._o constantine_n the_o great_a prescribe_v a_o set_a form_n of_o prayer_n to_o his_o soldier_n which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o eusebius_n his_o four_o book_n in_o origen_n time_n there_o be_v set_v form_n of_o prayer_n use_v in_o the_o church_n d._n preston_n the_o book_n of_o psalm_n be_v the_o jewish_a liturgy_n or_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o their_o vocal_a service_n wherewith_o they_o worship_v god_n in_o the_o temple_n 1_o chron._n 16._o 7._o see_v ezra_n 3._o 11._o mr._n mede_n on_o matth._n 6._o 9_o habent_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la reformatae_fw-la passim_fw-la ad_fw-la bibliorum_fw-la aut_fw-la psalteriorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la calcem_fw-la commune_v svas_fw-la liturgias_fw-la &_o confessiones_fw-la quo_fw-la svam_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o in_o cultu_fw-la communionem_fw-la ac_fw-la unitatem_fw-la publicae_fw-la contestantur_fw-la mare_n quaest._n theol._n quaest._n 11._o fuisse_fw-la liturgias_fw-la &_o formulas_fw-la ordinarias_fw-la precum_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la primitiva_fw-la statim_fw-la à _fw-la temporibus_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la colligi_fw-la potest_fw-la ex_fw-la justino_n martyr_n &_o tertulliano_n v._o s._n id._n ibid._n vide_fw-la balduinum_fw-la de_fw-fr case_z consc_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 7._o case_z 13._o vides_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la incoepisse_v statim_fw-la ab_fw-la orbe_fw-la condito_fw-la semperque_fw-la fuisse_fw-la celebres_fw-la ac_fw-la solennes_n conventus_fw-la hominum_fw-la piorum_fw-la quos_fw-la quicunque_fw-la negligunt_fw-la &_o contemnunt_fw-la non_fw-la erunt_fw-la participes_fw-la promissionum_fw-la dei_fw-la quae_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la valent_fw-la &_o efficaces_fw-la '_o sunt_fw-la non_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quod_fw-la certè_fw-la &_o veteres_fw-la hebraeorum_n tenuerunt_fw-la hinc_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la qui_fw-la contemnit_fw-la solennes_n ecclesiae_fw-la coetus_fw-la non_fw-la habebit_fw-la partem_fw-la futuri_fw-la seculi_fw-la haec_fw-la notent_fw-la sectarii_fw-la paul_n fag_n in_o gen._n 4._o 3._o deus_fw-la pluris_fw-la facit_fw-la preces_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la quam_fw-la domi_fw-la factas_fw-la non_fw-la ob_fw-la locum_fw-la sed_fw-la ob_fw-la considerationem_fw-la multitudinis_fw-la
of_o isaac_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o israel_n see_v jer._n 17._o 17._o qui_fw-la nil_fw-la sperant_fw-la nisi_fw-la à _fw-la domino_fw-la nil_fw-la metuunt_fw-la praeter_fw-la dominum_fw-la bârn_v 5._o to_o love_n god_n for_o himself_o and_o all_o thing_n else_o for_o he_o zach._n 8._o ult_n 6._o to_o observe_v god_n departing_n and_o to_o be_v afflict_v with_o nothing_o so_o much_o numb_a 14._o 9_o deut._n 22._o 30._o the_o main_a of_o godliness_n be_v in_o make_v god_n your_o all_o therefore_o the_o lust_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v call_v ungodly_a lust_n the_o more_o one_o can_v see_v and_o taste_v god_n in_o every_o thing_n the_o more_o he_o thrive_v in_o gruce_n see_v psal._n 104._o 34._o hereby_o the_o soul_n see_v the_o all-sufficiency_n of_o god_n to_o satisfy_v he_o prov._n 14._o 14._o this_o be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o the_o triumph_n of_o faith_n i_o will_v make_v my_o boast_n in_o god_n see_v hab._n 3._o 17_o 18._o and_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o eternal_a life_n matth._n 18._o 14._o the_o centurist_n observe_v four_o kind_n of_o confession_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n 1._o a_o confession_n of_o sin_n to_o god_n alone_o 1_o john_n 1._o 9_o 2._o a_o confession_n coram_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la before_o the_o church_n when_o man_n acknowledge_v public_o their_o wicked_a and_o scandalous_a deed_n and_o do_v profess_v their_o repent_v and_o loathe_v of_o the_o same_o act._n 19_o 18._o 3._o confession_n one_o to_o another_o of_o particular_a private_a injury_n and_o offence_n jam._n 5._o 16._o 4._o the_o confession_n or_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n 1_o joh._n 4._o 2._o m._n gillesp._n aar_n rod_n bloss_n l._n 2._o â_o 2._o truth_n to_o be_v confess_v be_v 1._o truth_n of_o faith_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 15._o 2._o truth_n of_o fact_n joshua_n 7._o 14._o the_o just_a occasion_n of_o confess_v 1._o our_o faith_n be_v 1._o when_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v oppose_v act._n 24._o 14._o 2._o when_o we_o be_v question_v about_o it_o by_o magistrate_n dan._n 3._o 3_o when_o other_o go_v aside_o from_o the_o true_a faith_n act._n 17._o 23._o 4._o when_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n where_o we_o live_v 1_o cor._n 14._o 4_o 5_o 12_o 19_o 2._o matter_n of_o fact_n 1._o when_o there_o be_v evidence_n that_o such_o a_o fact_n be_v commit_v as_o in_o achans_n case_n 2._o when_o other_o be_v in_o danger_n in_o respect_n of_o such_o a_o fact_n i_o have_v commit_v judg._n 17._o 2_o 3._o 3_o when_o prejudice_n else_o may_v come_v to_o the_o church_n or_o state_n where_o i_o live_v 4._o when_o by_o due_a course_n of_o the_o law_n one_o be_v find_v guilty_a and_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o he_o in_o such_o a_o case_n he_o be_v bind_v to_o make_v confession_n so_o the_o penitent_a thief_n else_o he_o shall_v end_v his_o day_n in_o sin_n 5._o for_o the_o case_n of_o a_o man_n conscience_n when_o his_o sin_n be_v secret_a he_o may_v disclose_v they_o confession_n must_v be_v 1._o voluntary_a not_o force_v 2._o prudent_o order_v stephen_n the_o protomartyr_n they_o transgress_v this_o commandment_n 1._o who_o swear_v common_o 2._o who_o swear_v to_o do_v thing_n unlawful_a as_o 1_o sam._n 28._o 10._o &_o 14._o 39_o 44._o 3._o who_o swear_v false_o or_o fraudulent_o or_o what_o they_o mind_n not_o to_o perform_v matth._n 26._o 72._o 1_o sam._n 19_o 6._o ezek._n 17._o 16_o 18_o 19_o 4._o who_o use_v to_o swear_v indirect_o as_o meaning_n to_o swear_v by_o god_n name_v the_o creature_n 5._o who_o swear_v by_o god_n and_o by_o idol_n gen._n 31._o 53._o ford._n those_o that_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o likewise_o by_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n offend_v this_o commandment_n as_o when_o the_o form_n of_o their_o oath_n be_v thus_o as_o help_v i_o god_n and_o all_o saint_n for_o the_o oath_n must_v be_v only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n b._n hooper_n of_o the_o command_n aquin._n 2a_o 2ae_fw-la quaest._n 89._o art_n 6._o docet_fw-la licere_fw-la per_fw-la ipsas_fw-la quoque_fw-la creaturas_fw-la jurare_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la sanctos_fw-la per_fw-la angeios_fw-la per_fw-la sacra_fw-la dei_fw-la evangelia_n quod_fw-la alicubi_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la reformatis_fw-la illa_fw-la adbuc_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la retineatur_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la quis_fw-la jurat_fw-la manu_fw-la tangat_fw-la evangelia_n sacra_fw-la atque_fw-la etiam_fw-la addat_fw-la haec_fw-la verba_fw-la ad_fw-la haec_fw-la sacra_fw-la dei_fw-la evangelia_n juro_fw-la etc._n etc._n illud_fw-la excusari_fw-la vicunque_fw-la potest_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la propriè_fw-la juratur_fw-la per_fw-la evangelium_fw-la sed_fw-la est_fw-la obtestatio_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la vivit_fw-la deus_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sensus_fw-la sicut_fw-la verba_fw-la evangelii_n &_o sacrorum_fw-la bibliorum_fw-la verissima_fw-la sunt_fw-la sic_fw-la etiam_fw-la quod_fw-la dico_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la zanch._n tom._n 4._o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr decal_n in_o precept_n 3._o jurare_fw-la per_fw-la creaturam_fw-la absolutè_fw-la ultimatè_fw-la &_o terminatiuè_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la constituatur_fw-la in_o aliqua_fw-la creatura_fw-la finis_fw-la &_o vis_fw-la juramenti_fw-la sine_fw-la relatione_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la illicitum_fw-la est_fw-la secundò_fw-la jurare_fw-la per_fw-la creaturas_fw-la relatiuè_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la transitiuè_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la b._n virginem_fw-la &_o alios_fw-la anctos_fw-la sanctorumve_fw-la reliquias_fw-la pertranseat_fw-la &_o per_fw-la ipsos_fw-la deferatur_fw-la finaliter_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la superstitiosum_fw-la sanders_n de_fw-fr juram_fw-la prom_fw-la oblige_v prael_n 5._o judg._n 21._o 1._o nor_o swear_v deceitful_o nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la perjurium_fw-la quam_fw-la mendacium_fw-la juramento_fw-la firmatum_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la omnino_fw-la idem_fw-la fit_a accedente_fw-la juramento_fw-la perjurium_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la in_o nuda_fw-la pollicitatione_n mendacium_fw-la sanderson_n de_fw-fr juramenti_fw-la promissorii_fw-la obligatione_fw-la praelect_a 2._o sect._n 6._o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a oath_n of_o the_o roman_n medius_n fidius_fw-la as_o with_o we_o be_v by_o the_o mass_n or_o by_o our_o lady_n and_o so_o much_o use_v that_o tertullian_n complain_v that_o the_o christian_n through_o custom_n have_v make_v it_o so_o familiar_a that_o in_o ordinary_a speech_n they_o use_v medius_n fidius_fw-la and_o mehercules_fw-la not_o remember_v nor_o yet_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v consuetudinis_fw-la vitium_fw-la est_fw-la dicere_fw-la mehercules_fw-la dicere_fw-la &_o medius_n fidius_fw-la accedente_fw-la ignorantiam_fw-la quorundam_fw-la qui_fw-la ignorant_a jusjurandum_fw-la esse_fw-la per_fw-la herculem_fw-la tertul._n the_o idolat_a student_n will_v not_o swear_v in_o english_a yet_o in_o latin_a they_o make_v no_o bone_n of_o it_o say_v mehercule_fw-la medius_fw-la fidius_fw-la aedipol_n per_fw-la deos_fw-la immortales_fw-la mr._n perkins_n in_o his_o government_n of_o the_o tongue_n god_n i_o be_v swear_v by_o a_o figure_n 'slid_o be_v a_o oath_n by_o way_n of_o abbreviation_n and_o as_o i_o be_o a_o gentleman_n be_v little_o better_a capel_n of_o tentat_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n 5._o there_o be_v 1._o ridiculous_a oath_n as_o by_o lakin_n 2._o pharisaical_a by_o creature_n as_o light_n fire_n 3._o popish_a by_o saint_n as_o mary_n john_n idol_n as_o mass_n rood_n amos_n 8._o 14._o 4._o heathenish_a by_o the_o god_n of_o the_o gentile_n 1_o king_n 19_o 2._o mehercule_fw-la medius_n fidius_fw-la etc._n etc._n 5._o blasphemous_a as_o by_o all_o the_o part_n and_o member_n of_o christ._n b._n down_o abstract_v 3._o prec_fw-la a_o oath_n must_v not_o be_v vinculum_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la act_n 23._o 12._o where_o we_o have_v example_n of_o use_v any_o thing_n to_o serious_a and_o weighty_a purpose_n and_o never_o to_o ludicrous_a and_o sportful_a there_o it_o be_v far_o safe_a for_o we_o so_o to_o use_v the_o same_o that_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v we_o follow_v god_n warrant_v for_o god_n by_o leave_v divers_a such_o example_n to_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o intend_v our_o direction_n in_o the_o use_n of_o that_o thing_n we_o have_v divers_a example_n for_o use_v lot_n in_o weighty_a matter_n none_o in_o sport_n 2._o a_o lot_n be_v a_o sacred_a thing_n the_o cast_n of_o a_o lot_n a_o sacred_a action_n because_o in_o use_v it_o we_o do_v especial_o and_o immediate_o refer_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n providence_n for_o the_o whole_a dispose_n of_o it_o be_v from_o he_o here_o the_o old_a say_n be_v true_a non_fw-la est_fw-la bonum_fw-la ludere_fw-la cum_fw-la sanctis_fw-la dr._n taylor_n call_v card_n and_o dice_n the_o devil_n book_n and_o bone_n see_v he_o on_o temptat_fw-la dr._n ames_n case_n of_o cons_n l._n 5._o c._n 45._o cartwright_n on_o prov._n 16._o ult_n and_o dr._n willet_n on_o leu._n 16._o 12._o p._n 375_o 376_o of_o unlawfulness_n of_o game_n go_v whole_o by_o lot_n alearum_fw-la ludus_fw-la &_o id_fw-la genus_fw-la alij_fw-la ob_fw-la sortem_fw-la aut_fw-la fortunam_fw-la in_o eye_n omninò_fw-la dominantem_fw-la ob_fw-la turpe_fw-la lucrum_fw-la ob_fw-la inâamiam_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la propter_fw-la blasphemiarum_fw-la &_o